collapse all  

Text -- Revelation 3:3-22 (NET)

Strongs On/Off
Context
3:3 Therefore, remember what you received and heard, and obey it, and repent. If you do not wake up, I will come like a thief, and you will never know at what hour I will come against you. 3:4 But you have a few individuals in Sardis who have not stained their clothes, and they will walk with me dressed in white, because they are worthy. 3:5 The one who conquers will be dressed like them in white clothing, and I will never erase his name from the book of life, but will declare his name before my Father and before his angels. 3:6 The one who has an ear had better hear what the Spirit says to the churches.’
To the Church in Philadelphia
3:7 “To the angel of the church in Philadelphia write the following: “This is the solemn pronouncement of the Holy One, the True One, who holds the key of David, who opens doors no one can shut, and shuts doors no one can open: 3:8 ‘I know your deeds. (Look! I have put in front of you an open door that no one can shut.) I know that you have little strength, but you have obeyed my word and have not denied my name. 3:9 Listen! I am going to make those people from the synagogue of Satan– who say they are Jews yet are not, but are lying– Look, I will make them come and bow down at your feet and acknowledge that I have loved you. 3:10 Because you have kept my admonition to endure steadfastly, I will also keep you from the hour of testing that is about to come on the whole world to test those who live on the earth. 3:11 I am coming soon. Hold on to what you have so that no one can take away your crown. 3:12 The one who conquers I will make a pillar in the temple of my God, and he will never depart from it. I will write on him the name of my God and the name of the city of my God (the new Jerusalem that comes down out of heaven from my God), and my new name as well. 3:13 The one who has an ear had better hear what the Spirit says to the churches.’
To the Church in Laodicea
3:14 “To the angel of the church in Laodicea write the following: “This is the solemn pronouncement of the Amen, the faithful and true witness, the originator of God’s creation: 3:15 ‘I know your deeds, that you are neither cold nor hot. I wish you were either cold or hot! 3:16 So because you are lukewarm, and neither hot nor cold, I am going to vomit you out of my mouth! 3:17 Because you say, “I am rich and have acquired great wealth, and need nothing,” but do not realize that you are wretched, pitiful, poor, blind, and naked, 3:18 take my advice and buy gold from me refined by fire so you can become rich! Buy from me white clothing so you can be clothed and your shameful nakedness will not be exposed, and buy eye salve to put on your eyes so you can see! 3:19 All those I love, I rebuke and discipline. So be earnest and repent! 3:20 Listen! I am standing at the door and knocking! If anyone hears my voice and opens the door I will come into his home and share a meal with him, and he with me. 3:21 I will grant the one who conquers permission to sit with me on my throne, just as I too conquered and sat down with my Father on his throne. 3:22 The one who has an ear had better hear what the Spirit says to the churches.’”
Parallel   Cross Reference (TSK)   ITL  

Names, People and Places, Dictionary Themes and Topics

Names, People and Places:
 · David a son of Jesse of Judah; king of Israel,son of Jesse of Judah; king of Israel
 · Jerusalem the capital city of Israel,a town; the capital of Israel near the southern border of Benjamin
 · Jews the people descended from Israel
 · Laodicea residents of the town of Laodicea
 · Philadelphia a town in Lydia in the western part of Asia Minor
 · Sardis the capital city of the province of Lydia in Asia Minor
 · Satan a person, male (evil angelic),an angel that has rebelled against God


Dictionary Themes and Topics: Wicked | White | Righteous | REVELATION OF JOHN | Poor | Philadelphia | PAROUSIA | NAME | MEDIATION; MEDIATOR | Laodicea | Knock | Jesus, The Christ | Decision | Church | COLOSSIANS, EPISTLE TO THE | COLOR; COLORS | Banquet | Backsliders | Ambush | APPEAR | more
Table of Contents

Word/Phrase Notes
Robertson , Vincent , Wesley , JFB , Clarke , Defender , TSK

Word/Phrase Notes
Barnes , Poole , PBC , Haydock , Gill

Verse Notes / Footnotes
NET Notes , Geneva Bible

Verse Range Notes
TSK Synopsis , Maclaren , MHCC , Matthew Henry , Barclay , Constable , College

Other
Evidence

collapse all
Commentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per phrase)

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- Remember ( mnēmoneue ). "Keep in mind,"as in Rev 2:5.

Remember ( mnēmoneue ).

"Keep in mind,"as in Rev 2:5.

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- Therefore ( oun ). Resumptive and coordinating as in Rev 1:19; Rev 2:5.

Therefore ( oun ).

Resumptive and coordinating as in Rev 1:19; Rev 2:5.

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- Thou hast received ( eilēphas ). Perfect active indicative of lambanō , "as a permanent deposit"(Vincent).

Thou hast received ( eilēphas ).

Perfect active indicative of lambanō , "as a permanent deposit"(Vincent).

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- Didst hear ( ēkousas ). First aorist active indicative, the act of hearing at the time.

Didst hear ( ēkousas ).

First aorist active indicative, the act of hearing at the time.

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- And keep it ( kai tērei ). Present active imperative of tēreō , "hold on to what thou hast."

And keep it ( kai tērei ).

Present active imperative of tēreō , "hold on to what thou hast."

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- And repent ( kai metanoēson ). First aorist active imperative of metanoeō , "Turn at once."

And repent ( kai metanoēson ).

First aorist active imperative of metanoeō , "Turn at once."

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- If therefore thou shalt not watch ( ean oun mē grēgorēsēis ). Condition of third class with ean mē and the first aorist (ingressive) acti...

If therefore thou shalt not watch ( ean oun mē grēgorēsēis ).

Condition of third class with ean mē and the first aorist (ingressive) active subjunctive of grēgoreō , "if then thou do not wake up."

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- I will come ( hēxō ). Certainly future active here, though probably aorist subjunctive in Rev 2:25.

I will come ( hēxō ).

Certainly future active here, though probably aorist subjunctive in Rev 2:25.

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- As a thief ( hōs kleptēs ). As Jesus had already said (Mat 24:43; Luk 12:39), as Paul had said (1Th 5:2), as Peter had said (2Pe 3:10), as Jesus ...

As a thief ( hōs kleptēs ).

As Jesus had already said (Mat 24:43; Luk 12:39), as Paul had said (1Th 5:2), as Peter had said (2Pe 3:10), as Jesus will say again (Rev 16:15).

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- Thou shalt not know ( ou mē gnōis ). Strong double negative ou mē with second aorist active subjunctive of ginōskō , though some MSS. hav...

Thou shalt not know ( ou mē gnōis ).

Strong double negative ou mē with second aorist active subjunctive of ginōskō , though some MSS. have the future middle indicative gnōsēi .

Robertson: Rev 3:3 - -- What hour ( poian hōran ). A rare classical idiom (accusative) surviving in the Koiné rather than the genitive of time, somewhat like Joh 4:52; ...

What hour ( poian hōran ).

A rare classical idiom (accusative) surviving in the Koiné rather than the genitive of time, somewhat like Joh 4:52; Act 20:16 (Robertson, Grammar , p. 470f.). Indirect question with poian .

Robertson: Rev 3:4 - -- A few names ( oliga onomata ). This use of onoma for persons is seen in the Koiné (Deissmann, Bible Studies , p. 196f.) as in Act 1:15; Rev 11:...

A few names ( oliga onomata ).

This use of onoma for persons is seen in the Koiné (Deissmann, Bible Studies , p. 196f.) as in Act 1:15; Rev 11:13.

Robertson: Rev 3:4 - -- Did not defile ( ouk emolunan ). First aorist active indicative of molunō (1Co 8:7; 1Pe 1:4), pollution.

Did not defile ( ouk emolunan ).

First aorist active indicative of molunō (1Co 8:7; 1Pe 1:4), pollution.

Robertson: Rev 3:4 - -- They shall walk ( peripatēsousin ). Future active of peripateō , promise of fellowship with Christ (met' emou , with me) "in white"(en leukois )...

They shall walk ( peripatēsousin ).

Future active of peripateō , promise of fellowship with Christ (met' emou , with me) "in white"(en leukois ), as symbols of purity (Rev 7:9, Rev 7:13) like the angel (Mat 28:3), with possibly a reference to Enoch (Gen 5:22). For they are worthy (hoti axioi eisin ). To walk with Christ, not worthy in the same sense as God and Christ (Rev 4:11; Rev 5:9), but in a relative sense. See Rev 16:6 for bad sense of axios .

Robertson: Rev 3:5 - -- Shall be arrayed ( peribaleitai ). Future middle indicative of periballō , to fling around one, here and in Rev 4:4 with en and the locative, but...

Shall be arrayed ( peribaleitai ).

Future middle indicative of periballō , to fling around one, here and in Rev 4:4 with en and the locative, but usually in this book with the accusative of the thing, retained in the passive or with the middle (Rev 7:9, Rev 7:13; Rev 10:1; Rev 11:3; Rev 12:1; Rev 17:4; Rev 18:16; Rev 19:8, Rev 19:13).

Robertson: Rev 3:5 - -- In white garments ( en himatiois leukois ). Apparently the spiritual bodies in the risen life as in 2Co 5:1, 2Co 5:4 and often in Revelation (Rev 3:4...

In white garments ( en himatiois leukois ).

Apparently the spiritual bodies in the risen life as in 2Co 5:1, 2Co 5:4 and often in Revelation (Rev 3:4, Rev 3:5; Rev 6:11; Rev 7:9, Rev 7:13.; Rev 19:8).

Robertson: Rev 3:5 - -- I will in no wise blot out ( ou mē exaleipsō ). Strong double negative ou mē and the first aorist active (or future) of exaleiphō , old wor...

I will in no wise blot out ( ou mē exaleipsō ).

Strong double negative ou mē and the first aorist active (or future) of exaleiphō , old word, to wipe out (Act 3:19).

Robertson: Rev 3:5 - -- Of the book of life ( ek tēs biblou tēs zōēs ). Ablative case with ek . This divine register first occurs in Exo 32:32. and often in the O.T....

Of the book of life ( ek tēs biblou tēs zōēs ).

Ablative case with ek . This divine register first occurs in Exo 32:32. and often in the O.T. See Luk 10:20; Phi 4:3; Rev 13:8; Rev 20:15; Rev 21:27. The book is in Christ’ s hands (Rev 13:8; Rev 21:27).

Robertson: Rev 3:5 - -- His name ( to onoma autou ). The name of the one who overcomes (ho nikōn ). Clear reminiscence of the words of Christ about confessing to the Fath...

His name ( to onoma autou ).

The name of the one who overcomes (ho nikōn ). Clear reminiscence of the words of Christ about confessing to the Father those who confess him here (Mat 10:32; Mar 8:38; Luk 9:26; Luk 12:8). Whether John knew the Synoptic Gospels (and why not?) he certainly knew such sayings of Jesus.

Robertson: Rev 3:7 - -- In Philadelphia ( en Philadelphiāi ). Some twenty-eight miles south-east of Sardis, in Lydia, subject to earthquakes, rebuilt by Tiberius after the...

In Philadelphia ( en Philadelphiāi ).

Some twenty-eight miles south-east of Sardis, in Lydia, subject to earthquakes, rebuilt by Tiberius after the great earthquake of a.d. 17, for a time called in coins Neo-Caesarea, in wine-growing district with Bacchus (Dionysos) as the chief deity, on fine Roman roads and of commercial importance, though not a large city, called by Ramsay ( op. cit. , p. 392) "the Missionary City"to promote the spread of the Graeco-Roman civilization and then of Christianity, later offering stubborn resistance to the Turks (1379-90 a.d.) and now called Ala-Sheher (reddish city, Charles, from the red hills behind it). The chief opposition to the faithful little church is from the Jews (cf. Rom 9-11). There are some 1,000 Christians there today.

Robertson: Rev 3:7 - -- The holy, he that is true ( ho hagios , ho alēthinos ). Separate articles (four in all) for each item in this description. "The holy, the genuine....

The holy, he that is true ( ho hagios , ho alēthinos ).

Separate articles (four in all) for each item in this description. "The holy, the genuine."Asyndeton in the Greek. Latin Vulgate, Sanctus et Verus . Hosea hagios is ascribed to God in Rev 4:8; Rev 6:10 (both hagios and alēthinos as here), but to Christ in Mar 1:24; Luk 4:34; Joh 6:69; Act 4:27, Act 4:30; 1Jo 2:20, a recognized title of the Messiah as the consecrated one set apart. Swete notes that alēthinos is verus as distinguished from verax (alēthēs ). So it is applied to God in Rev 6:10 and to Christ in Rev 3:14; Rev 19:11 as in Joh 1:9; Joh 6:32; Joh 15:1.

Robertson: Rev 3:7 - -- He that hath the key of David ( ho echōn tēn klein Daueid ). This epithet comes from Isa 22:22, where Eliakim as the chief steward of the royal h...

He that hath the key of David ( ho echōn tēn klein Daueid ).

This epithet comes from Isa 22:22, where Eliakim as the chief steward of the royal household holds the keys of power. Christ as the Messiah (Rev 5:5; Rev 22:16) has exclusive power in heaven, on earth, and in Hades (Mat 16:19; Mat 28:18; Rom 14:9; Phi 2:9.; Rev 1:18). Christ has power to admit and exclude of his own will (Mat 25:10.; Eph 1:22; Rev 3:21; Rev 19:11-16; Rev 20:4; Rev 22:16).

Robertson: Rev 3:7 - -- And none shall shut ( kai oudeis kleisei ). Charles calls the structure Hebrew (future active indicative of kleiō ), and not Greek because it does...

And none shall shut ( kai oudeis kleisei ).

Charles calls the structure Hebrew (future active indicative of kleiō ), and not Greek because it does not correspond to the present articular participle just before ho anoigōn (the one opening), but it occurs often in this book as in the very next clause, "and none openeth"(kai oudeis anoigei ) over against kleiōn (present active participle, opening) though here some MSS. read kleiei (present active indicative, open).

Robertson: Rev 3:8 - -- I have set ( dedōka ). Perfect active indicative of didōmi , "I have given"(a gift of Christ, this open door). See Luk 12:51 for a like use of di...

I have set ( dedōka ).

Perfect active indicative of didōmi , "I have given"(a gift of Christ, this open door). See Luk 12:51 for a like use of didōmi .

Robertson: Rev 3:8 - -- A door opened ( thuran ēneōigmenēn ). Perfect (triple reduplication) passive predicate participle of anoigō (Rev 3:7) accusative feminine s...

A door opened ( thuran ēneōigmenēn ).

Perfect (triple reduplication) passive predicate participle of anoigō (Rev 3:7) accusative feminine singular. The metaphor of the open door was a common one (Joh 10:7-9; Act 14:27; 1Co 16:9; 2Co 2:12; Col 4:3; Rev 3:20; Rev 4:1). Probably it means here a good opportunity for missionary effort in spite of the Jewish hostility.

Robertson: Rev 3:8 - -- Which ( hēn - autēn ). Pleonastic vernacular and Hebrew repetition of the personal pronoun autēn (it) after the relative hēn (which). Di...

Which ( hēn - autēn ).

Pleonastic vernacular and Hebrew repetition of the personal pronoun autēn (it) after the relative hēn (which). Direct reference to the statement in Rev 3:7.

Robertson: Rev 3:8 - -- That ( hoti ). This conjunction resumes the construction of oida sou ta erga (I know thy works) after the parenthesis (idou - autēn , Behold - s...

That ( hoti ).

This conjunction resumes the construction of oida sou ta erga (I know thy works) after the parenthesis (idou - autēn , Behold - shut).

Robertson: Rev 3:8 - -- A little power ( mikran dunamin ). Probably "little power,"little influence or weight in Philadelphia, the members probably from the lower classes (1...

A little power ( mikran dunamin ).

Probably "little power,"little influence or weight in Philadelphia, the members probably from the lower classes (1Co 1:26.).

Robertson: Rev 3:8 - -- And didst keep ( kai etērēsas ). "And yet (adversative use of kai ) didst keep"(first aorist active indicative of tēreō ) my word in some c...

And didst keep ( kai etērēsas ).

"And yet (adversative use of kai ) didst keep"(first aorist active indicative of tēreō ) my word in some crisis of trial. See Joh 17:6 for the phrase "keeping the word."

Robertson: Rev 3:8 - -- Didst not deny ( ouk ērnēsō ). First aorist middle indicative second person singular of arneomai . The issue was probably forced by the Jews (c...

Didst not deny ( ouk ērnēsō ).

First aorist middle indicative second person singular of arneomai . The issue was probably forced by the Jews (cf. Rev 2:9), but they stood true.

Robertson: Rev 3:9 - -- I give ( didō ). Late omega form for didōmi , but the ̇mi form in Rev 17:13 (didoasin ). These Jewish converts are a gift from Christ. For th...

I give ( didō ).

Late omega form for didōmi , but the ̇mi form in Rev 17:13 (didoasin ). These Jewish converts are a gift from Christ. For this use of didōmi see Act 2:27; Act 10:40; Act 14:3. There is ellipse of tinas before ek as in Rev 2:10 (ex humōn ) and see Rev 2:9 for "the synagogue of Satan."

Robertson: Rev 3:9 - -- Of them which say ( tōn legontōn ). Ablative plural in apposition with sunagōgēs . On the construction of heautous Ioudaious einai see note...

Of them which say ( tōn legontōn ).

Ablative plural in apposition with sunagōgēs . On the construction of heautous Ioudaious einai see note on Rev 2:9 (Ioudaious einai heautous , the order of words being immaterial).

Robertson: Rev 3:9 - -- But do lie ( alla pseudontai ). Present middle indicative of pseudomai , explanatory positive, addition here to kai ouk eisin of Rev 2:9, in contra...

But do lie ( alla pseudontai ).

Present middle indicative of pseudomai , explanatory positive, addition here to kai ouk eisin of Rev 2:9, in contrast also with ho alēthinos of Rev 3:7 and in Johannine style (Joh 8:44; 1Jo 1:10; 1Jo 2:4).

Robertson: Rev 3:9 - -- I will make them ( poiēsō autous ). Future active indicative of poieō , resuming the prophecy after the parenthesis (tōn - pseudontai , whic...

I will make them ( poiēsō autous ).

Future active indicative of poieō , resuming the prophecy after the parenthesis (tōn - pseudontai , which say - but do lie).

Robertson: Rev 3:9 - -- To come and worship ( hina hēxousin kai proskunēsousin ). "That they come and worship"(final clause, like facio ut in Latin, with hina and t...

To come and worship ( hina hēxousin kai proskunēsousin ).

"That they come and worship"(final clause, like facio ut in Latin, with hina and the future active of hēkō and proskuneō ). The language is based on Isa 45:14; Isa 60:14. The Jews expected homage (not worship in the strict sense) from the Gentiles, but it will come to the Christians at last (1Co 14:24). Later Ignatius ( Philad. 6) warns this church against Judaizing Christians, perhaps one result of an influx of Jews.

Robertson: Rev 3:9 - -- And to know ( kai gnōsin ). Continuation of the purpose clause with hina , but with the second aorist active subjunctive rather than the less usual...

And to know ( kai gnōsin ).

Continuation of the purpose clause with hina , but with the second aorist active subjunctive rather than the less usual future indicative. See both constructions also with hina in Rev 22:14. Probably a reminiscence of Isa 43:4 in egō ēgapēsa se (I loved thee), first aorist active indicative.

Robertson: Rev 3:10 - -- Patience ( hupomenēs ). "Endurance"as in Rev 13:10; Rev 14:12 as also in 2Th 3:5.

Patience ( hupomenēs ).

"Endurance"as in Rev 13:10; Rev 14:12 as also in 2Th 3:5.

Robertson: Rev 3:10 - -- Thou didst keep ( etērēsas ) - I also will keep (kagō tērēsō ). Aorist active indicative and future active corresponding to each othe...

Thou didst keep ( etērēsas )

- I also will keep (kagō tērēsō ). Aorist active indicative and future active corresponding to each other. For a like play on the tenses of this verb by Christ see Joh 17:6 (tetērēkan ), Joh 17:11 (tērēson ), Joh 17:12 (etēroun ).

Robertson: Rev 3:10 - -- From the hour of trial ( ek tēs hōras tou peirasmou ). This use of ek after tēreō in Joh 17:15, apo in Jam 1:27. Trial brings temptatio...

From the hour of trial ( ek tēs hōras tou peirasmou ).

This use of ek after tēreō in Joh 17:15, apo in Jam 1:27. Trial brings temptation often (Jam 1:2, Jam 1:13). Jesus endured (Heb 12:1.) and he will help them. There is still a church in Philadelphia in spite of the Turks.

Robertson: Rev 3:10 - -- Which is to come ( tēs mellousēs erchesthai ). Agreeing with hōras (feminine), not with peirasmou (masculine).

Which is to come ( tēs mellousēs erchesthai ).

Agreeing with hōras (feminine), not with peirasmou (masculine).

Robertson: Rev 3:10 - -- Upon the whole world ( epi tēs epoikoumenēs holēs ). The inhabited earth (gēs ) as in Rev 12:9; Luk 2:1; Act 16:6, etc.), not the physical e...

Upon the whole world ( epi tēs epoikoumenēs holēs ).

The inhabited earth (gēs ) as in Rev 12:9; Luk 2:1; Act 16:6, etc.), not the physical earth, but the world of men as explained by the next clause.

Robertson: Rev 3:10 - -- To try ( peirasai ). First aorist active infinitive of purpose from peirazō , probably to tempt (cf. the demons in 9:1-21), not merely to afflict (...

To try ( peirasai ).

First aorist active infinitive of purpose from peirazō , probably to tempt (cf. the demons in 9:1-21), not merely to afflict (Rev 2:10).

Robertson: Rev 3:10 - -- That dwell upon the earth ( tous katoikountas epi tēs gēs ). Present active articular participle of katoikeō , explaining "the whole world"just...

That dwell upon the earth ( tous katoikountas epi tēs gēs ).

Present active articular participle of katoikeō , explaining "the whole world"just before.

Robertson: Rev 3:11 - -- I come quickly ( erchomai tachu ). As in Rev 2:16; Rev 22:7, Rev 22:12, Rev 22:20. "The keynote of the book"(Beckwith). But allow the author’ s ...

I come quickly ( erchomai tachu ).

As in Rev 2:16; Rev 22:7, Rev 22:12, Rev 22:20. "The keynote of the book"(Beckwith). But allow the author’ s own meaning of "quickly."

Robertson: Rev 3:11 - -- Hold fast that which thou hast ( kratei ho echeis ). Sort of motto for each church (Rev 2:25).

Hold fast that which thou hast ( kratei ho echeis ).

Sort of motto for each church (Rev 2:25).

Robertson: Rev 3:11 - -- That no one take ( hina mēdeis labēi ). Purpose clause with hina and second aorist active subjunctive of lambanō . Here to take away "thy cro...

That no one take ( hina mēdeis labēi ).

Purpose clause with hina and second aorist active subjunctive of lambanō . Here to take away "thy crown"(Rev 2:10) which will be thine if really won and not forfeited by failure (2Ti 4:8). In that case it will go to another (Mat 25:28; Rom 11:17.).

Robertson: Rev 3:12 - -- He that overcometh ( ho nikōn ). Nominative absolute as in Rev 2:26, resumed by the accusative auton (him).

He that overcometh ( ho nikōn ).

Nominative absolute as in Rev 2:26, resumed by the accusative auton (him).

Robertson: Rev 3:12 - -- A pillar ( stulon ). Old word for column, in N.T. only here, Rev 10:1; Gal 2:9; 1Ti 3:15. Metaphorical and personal use with a double significance of...

A pillar ( stulon ).

Old word for column, in N.T. only here, Rev 10:1; Gal 2:9; 1Ti 3:15. Metaphorical and personal use with a double significance of being firmly fixed and giving stability to the building. Philadelphia was a city of earthquakes. "Temple"(naos ) here is also metaphorical (Rev 7:15), as in 1Ti 3:15 for the people of God. In Rev 21:22 we read that there is no temple in the heavenly Jerusalem (21:10-22:5) descending as the new Jerusalem with God himself as the temple, though the metaphorical temple is mentioned in Rev 7:15.

Robertson: Rev 3:12 - -- He shall go out thence no more ( exō ou mē elthēi ). Strong double negative ou mē with the second aorist active subjunctive of erchomai . T...

He shall go out thence no more ( exō ou mē elthēi ).

Strong double negative ou mē with the second aorist active subjunctive of erchomai . The subject is ho nikōn (the one overcoming). "Fixity of character is at last achieved"(Charles). He, like the stulos (pillar), remains in place.

Robertson: Rev 3:12 - -- Upon him ( ep' auton ). Upon ho nikōn (the victor), not upon the pillar (stulos ). He receives this triple name (of God, of the city of God, of ...

Upon him ( ep' auton ).

Upon ho nikoÌ„n (the victor), not upon the pillar (stulos ). He receives this triple name (of God, of the city of God, of Christ) on his forehead (Rev 14:1; Rev 7:3; Rev 17:5; Rev 22:4) just as the high-priest wore the name of Jehovah upon his forehead (Exo 28:36, Exo 28:38), the new name (Rev 2:17), without any magical or talismanic power, but as proof of ownership by God, as a citizen of the New Jerusalem, with the new symbol of the glorious personality of Christ (Rev 19:12), in contrast with the mark of the beast on others (Rev 13:17; Rev 14:17). For citizenship in God’ s city see Gal 4:26; Phi 3:20; Heb 11:10; Heb 12:22; Heb 13:14.

Robertson: Rev 3:12 - -- The new Jerusalem ( tēs kainēs Ierousalēm ). Not neas (young), but kainēs (fresh). See also Rev 21:2, Rev 21:10 and already Gal 4:26; Heb...

The new Jerusalem ( tēs kainēs Ierousalēm ).

Not neas (young), but kaineÌ„s (fresh). See also Rev 21:2, Rev 21:10 and already Gal 4:26; Heb 12:22. Charles distinguishes between the Jerusalem before the final judgment and this new Jerusalem after that event. Perhaps so! In the Apocalypse always this form IerousaleÌ„m (Rev 3:12; Rev 21:2, Rev 21:10), but in John’ s Gospel Hierosoluma (Rev 1:19, etc.).

Robertson: Rev 3:12 - -- Which cometh down ( hē katabainousa ). Nominative case in apposition with the preceding genitive poleōs as in Rev 1:5; Rev 2:20, etc.

Which cometh down ( hē katabainousa ).

Nominative case in apposition with the preceding genitive poleōs as in Rev 1:5; Rev 2:20, etc.

Robertson: Rev 3:12 - -- Mine own new name ( to onoma mou to kainon ). For which see Rev 2:17; Rev 19:12, Rev 19:16. Christ himself will receive a new name along with all els...

Mine own new name ( to onoma mou to kainon ).

For which see Rev 2:17; Rev 19:12, Rev 19:16. Christ himself will receive a new name along with all else in the future world (Gressmann).

Robertson: Rev 3:14 - -- In Laodicea ( en Laodikiāi ). Forty miles south-east of Philadelphia and some forty miles east of Ephesus, the last of the seven churches addressed...

In Laodicea ( en Laodikiāi ).

Forty miles south-east of Philadelphia and some forty miles east of Ephesus, the last of the seven churches addressed with special messages, on the river Lycus on the border of Phrygia, near Colossae and Hierapolis, recipient of two letters by Paul (Col 4:16), on the great trade-route from Ephesus to the east and seat of large manufacturing and banking operations (especially of woollen carpets and clothing, Ramsay, Cities and Bishoprics of Phrygia , p. 40ff.), centre of the worship of Asklepios and seat of a medical school and also of a provincial court where Cicero lived and wrote many of his letters, home of many Jews, called by Ramsay ( op. cit. , p. 413) "the City of Compromise,"the church here founded apparently by Epaphras (Col 1:7; Col 4:12.), now a deserted ruin, one of six cities with this name (meaning justice of the people). No praise is bestowed on this church, but only blame for its lukewarmness.

Robertson: Rev 3:14 - -- The Amen ( ho Amēn ). Personal (masculine article) name here alone, though in Isa 65:16 we have "the God of Amen"understood in the lxx as "the God ...

The Amen ( ho Amēn ).

Personal (masculine article) name here alone, though in Isa 65:16 we have "the God of Amen"understood in the lxx as "the God of truth"(ton theon ton alēthinon ). Here applied to Christ. See Rev 1:5 for ho martus ho pistos (the faithful witness) and Rev 3:7 for ho alēthinos (the genuine), "whose testimony never falls short of the truth"(Swete).

Robertson: Rev 3:14 - -- The beginning of the creation of God ( hē archē tēs ktiseōs tou theou ). Not the first of creatures as the Arians held and Unitarians do now,...

The beginning of the creation of God ( hē archē tēs ktiseōs tou theou ).

Not the first of creatures as the Arians held and Unitarians do now, but the originating source of creation through whom God works (Col 1:15, Col 1:18, a passage probably known to the Laodiceans, Joh 1:3; Heb 1:2, as is made clear by Rev 1:18; Rev 2:8; Rev 3:21; Rev 5:13).

Robertson: Rev 3:15 - -- Neither cold ( oute psuchros ). Old word from psuchō , to grow cold (Mat 24:12), in N.T. only Mat 10:42 and this passage.

Neither cold ( oute psuchros ).

Old word from psuchō , to grow cold (Mat 24:12), in N.T. only Mat 10:42 and this passage.

Robertson: Rev 3:15 - -- Nor hot ( oute zestos ). Late verbal from zeō , to boil, (Rom 12:11), boiling hot, here only in N.T.

Nor hot ( oute zestos ).

Late verbal from zeō , to boil, (Rom 12:11), boiling hot, here only in N.T.

Robertson: Rev 3:15 - -- I would thou wert ( ophelon ēs ). Wish about the present with ophelon (really ōphelon , second aorist active indicative of opheilō , without ...

I would thou wert ( ophelon ēs ).

Wish about the present with ophelon (really ōphelon , second aorist active indicative of opheilō , without augment) with the imperfect ēs (instead of the infinitive) as in 2Co 11:1, when the old Greek used eithe or ei gar . See 1Co 4:8 for the aorist indicative and Gal 5:12 for the future.

Robertson: Rev 3:16 - -- Lukewarm ( chliaros ). Tepid. Old adjective from chliō , to liquefy, to melt, here alone in N.T.

Lukewarm ( chliaros ).

Tepid. Old adjective from chliō , to liquefy, to melt, here alone in N.T.

Robertson: Rev 3:16 - -- I will ( mellō ). "I am about to,"on the point of.

I will ( mellō ).

"I am about to,"on the point of.

Robertson: Rev 3:16 - -- Spew thee ( se emesai ). First aorist active infinitive of emeō , old verb to vomit, to reject with extreme disgust, here alone in N.T.

Spew thee ( se emesai ).

First aorist active infinitive of emeō , old verb to vomit, to reject with extreme disgust, here alone in N.T.

Robertson: Rev 3:17 - -- I am rich ( hoti plousios eimi ). Recitative hoti like quotation marks before direct quotation. Old adjective from ploutos , riches, wealth. Laodic...

I am rich ( hoti plousios eimi ).

Recitative hoti like quotation marks before direct quotation. Old adjective from ploutos , riches, wealth. Laodicea was a wealthy city and the church "carried the pride of wealth into its spiritual life"(Swete).

Robertson: Rev 3:17 - -- Have gotten riches ( peploutēka ). Perfect active indicative of plouteō , old verb from ploutos , used here of imagined spiritual riches which th...

Have gotten riches ( peploutēka ).

Perfect active indicative of plouteō , old verb from ploutos , used here of imagined spiritual riches which the church did not possess, just the opposite of church in Smyrna (poor in wealth, rich in grace). This church was in a rich city and was rich in pride and conceit, but poor in grace and ignorant of its spiritual poverty (ouk oidas , knowest not).

Robertson: Rev 3:17 - -- The wretched one ( ho talaipōros ). Old adjective from tlaō , to endure, and pōros , a callus, afflicted, in N.T. only here and Rom 7:24. Note ...

The wretched one ( ho talaipōros ).

Old adjective from tlaō , to endure, and pōros , a callus, afflicted, in N.T. only here and Rom 7:24. Note the one article in the predicate with all these five adjectives unifying the picture of sharp emphasis on "thou"(su ), "thou that boastest."

Robertson: Rev 3:17 - -- Miserable ( eleeinos ). Pitiable as in 1Co 15:19.

Miserable ( eleeinos ).

Pitiable as in 1Co 15:19.

Robertson: Rev 3:17 - -- Poor ( ptōchos ). See Rev 2:9 for spiritual poverty. Perhaps some local example of self-complacency is in mind.

Poor ( ptōchos ).

See Rev 2:9 for spiritual poverty. Perhaps some local example of self-complacency is in mind.

Robertson: Rev 3:17 - -- Blind ( tuphlos ). Spiritual blindness as often (Mat 23:17), and note "eye-salve"in Rev 3:18.

Blind ( tuphlos ).

Spiritual blindness as often (Mat 23:17), and note "eye-salve"in Rev 3:18.

Robertson: Rev 3:17 - -- Naked ( gumnos ). "The figure completes the picture of actual poverty"(Beckwith). See Rev 3:15, Rev 3:16.

Naked ( gumnos ).

"The figure completes the picture of actual poverty"(Beckwith). See Rev 3:15, Rev 3:16.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- I counsel ( sumbouleuō ). Present active indicative, old compound from sumboulos , counsellor (Rom 11:34), as in Joh 18:14. Almost ironical in tone...

I counsel ( sumbouleuō ).

Present active indicative, old compound from sumboulos , counsellor (Rom 11:34), as in Joh 18:14. Almost ironical in tone.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- To buy ( agorasai ). First aorist active infinitive of agorazō (from agora , market-place), rich as they think themselves to be.

To buy ( agorasai ).

First aorist active infinitive of agorazō (from agora , market-place), rich as they think themselves to be.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- From me ( par' emou ). From my side, emphatic.

From me ( par' emou ).

From my side, emphatic.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- Refined by fire ( pepurōmenon ek puros ). Perfect passive participle of puroō (as in Rev 1:15) and the metaphor carried on by ek puros , "fired...

Refined by fire ( pepurōmenon ek puros ).

Perfect passive participle of puroō (as in Rev 1:15) and the metaphor carried on by ek puros , "fired by fire."Purity by removing dross (Psa 66:10) like 1Pe 1:7.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- That thou mayest become rich ( hina ploutēsēis ). Purpose clause with hina and the ingressive first aorist active of plouteō , spiritual rich...

That thou mayest become rich ( hina ploutēsēis ).

Purpose clause with hina and the ingressive first aorist active of plouteō , spiritual riches.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- That thou mayest clothe thyself ( hina peribalēi ). Purpose clause with hina and second aorist middle (direct) subjunctive of periballō , to fl...

That thou mayest clothe thyself ( hina peribalēi ).

Purpose clause with hina and second aorist middle (direct) subjunctive of periballō , to fling round one as in Rev 3:5.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- Be not made manifest ( mē phanerōthēi ). Continued purpose clause with negative mē and first aorist passive subjunctive of phaneroō .

Be not made manifest ( mē phanerōthēi ).

Continued purpose clause with negative mē and first aorist passive subjunctive of phaneroō .

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- Nakedness ( gumnotētos ). Late and rare word from gumnos , naked, in N.T. only here, 2Co 11:27; Rom 8:35. Cf. Rev 16:15; Rev 20:13; 2Co 5:2.

Nakedness ( gumnotētos ).

Late and rare word from gumnos , naked, in N.T. only here, 2Co 11:27; Rom 8:35. Cf. Rev 16:15; Rev 20:13; 2Co 5:2.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- Eye-salve ( kollourion ). Diminutive of kollura (coarse bread of cylindrical shape), object of agorasai , name for a famous Phrygian powder for the...

Eye-salve ( kollourion ).

Diminutive of kollura (coarse bread of cylindrical shape), object of agorasai , name for a famous Phrygian powder for the eyes made in Laodicea (Charles), Latin collyrium (used for eye-salve by Horace and Juvenal).

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- To anoint ( egchrisai ). First aorist active infinitive (epexegetic) of egchriō , late compound (en , chriō , Strabo, Epictetus), to rub in, her...

To anoint ( egchrisai ).

First aorist active infinitive (epexegetic) of egchriō , late compound (en , chriō , Strabo, Epictetus), to rub in, here only in N.T.

Robertson: Rev 3:18 - -- That thou mayest see ( hina blepēis ). Another purpose clause with hina and the present active subjunctive (keep on seeing).

That thou mayest see ( hina blepēis ).

Another purpose clause with hina and the present active subjunctive (keep on seeing).

Robertson: Rev 3:19 - -- Free rendering of Pro 3:12 (in Heb 12:6), but with hous ean (indefinite relative plural) for hon (definite relative singular), with philō inst...

Free rendering of Pro 3:12 (in Heb 12:6), but with hous ean (indefinite relative plural) for hon (definite relative singular), with philō instead of agapāi and with the first person paideuō for paideuei (the Lord chastens, from pais , child, training a child) and with elegchō (reprove) added. @@Be zealous ( zēleue ).

Present active imperative of zēleuō , in good sense (from zēlos , zeō , to boil), in opposition to their lukewarmness, here only in N.T. (elsewhere zēloō ), "keep on being zealous."

Robertson: Rev 3:19 - -- Repent ( metanoēson ). Ingressive first aorist active imperative of metanoeō .

Repent ( metanoēson ).

Ingressive first aorist active imperative of metanoeō .

Robertson: Rev 3:20 - -- I stand at the door ( hesteÌ„ka epi teÌ„n thuran ). Perfect active of histeÌ„mi (intransitive). Picture of the Lord’ s advent as in Mat 24:33;...

I stand at the door ( hestēka epi tēn thuran ).

Perfect active of histeÌ„mi (intransitive). Picture of the Lord’ s advent as in Mat 24:33; Jam 5:9, but true also of the individual response to Christ’ s call (Luk 12:36) as shown in Holman Hunt’ s great picture. Some see a use also of So Jam 5:2.

Robertson: Rev 3:20 - -- If any man hear - and open ( ean tis akousēi kai anoixēi ). Condition of third class with ean and first aorist (ingressive) active subjunctive ...

If any man hear - and open ( ean tis akousēi kai anoixēi ).

Condition of third class with ean and first aorist (ingressive) active subjunctive of akouō and anoigō . See Joh 10:3; Joh 18:37. See the picture reversed (Swete) in Luk 13:25; Mat 25:10.

Robertson: Rev 3:20 - -- I will come in to him ( eiseleusomai ). Future middle of eiserchomai . See Mar 15:43; Act 11:3 for eiserchomai pros , to go into a man’ s house....

I will come in to him ( eiseleusomai ).

Future middle of eiserchomai . See Mar 15:43; Act 11:3 for eiserchomai pros , to go into a man’ s house. Cf. Joh 14:23.

Robertson: Rev 3:20 - -- Will sup ( deipnēsō ). Future active of deipneō , old verb, from deipnon (supper), as in Luk 17:8. Fellowship in the Messianic kingdom (Luk 2...

Will sup ( deipnēsō ).

Future active of deipneō , old verb, from deipnon (supper), as in Luk 17:8. Fellowship in the Messianic kingdom (Luk 22:30; Mar 14:25; Mat 26:29). Purely metaphorical, as is plain from 1Co 6:13.

Robertson: Rev 3:21 - -- He that overcometh ( ho nikōn ). Absolute nominative again as in Rev 3:12, but resumed this time by the dative autōi as in Rev 2:26.

He that overcometh ( ho nikōn ).

Absolute nominative again as in Rev 3:12, but resumed this time by the dative autōi as in Rev 2:26.

Robertson: Rev 3:21 - -- To sit ( kathisai ). First aorist active infinitive of kathizō . This promise grows out of the prophecy that the saints will share in the Messiah&#...

To sit ( kathisai ).

First aorist active infinitive of kathizoÌ„ . This promise grows out of the prophecy that the saints will share in the Messiah’ s rule, made to the twelve (Mat 19:28; Luk 22:29.), repeated by Paul (1Co 6:2.), enlarged in Rev 22:1-5 (to last forever, 2Ti 2:11.). James and John took this hope and promise literally (Mar 10:40) not metaphorically.

Robertson: Rev 3:21 - -- As I also overcame ( hōs kagō enikēsa ). First aorist active indicative of nikaō , looking back on the victory as over in the past. In Joh 16...

As I also overcame ( hōs kagō enikēsa ).

First aorist active indicative of nikaō , looking back on the victory as over in the past. In Joh 16:33 before the Cross Jesus says Egō nenikēka ton kosmon (perfect active), emphasizing the abiding effect of the victory.

Robertson: Rev 3:21 - -- Sat down ( ekathisa ). "I took my seat"(Heb 1:3) where Christ is now (Rev 22:3; Col 3:1). Cf. 1Jo 5:4; Rev 2:27. Each of these seven messages begins ...

Sat down ( ekathisa ).

"I took my seat"(Heb 1:3) where Christ is now (Rev 22:3; Col 3:1). Cf. 1Jo 5:4; Rev 2:27. Each of these seven messages begins alike and ends alike. Each is the message of the Christ and of the Holy Spirit to the angel of the church. Each has a special message suited to the actual condition of each church. In each case the individual who overcomes has a promise of blessing. Christ the Shepherd knows his sheep and lays bare the particular peril in each case.

Vincent: Rev 3:3 - -- Thou hast received and heard ( εἰÌληφας καὶ ἠÌκουσας ) The former of these verbs is in the perfect tense: thou hast rece...

Thou hast received and heard ( εἰÌληφας καὶ ἠÌκουσας )

The former of these verbs is in the perfect tense: thou hast received the truth as a permanent deposit. It remains with thee whether thou regardest it or not. The latter verb is ill the aorist tense, didst hear (so Rev.), denoting merely the act of hearing when it took place.

Vincent: Rev 3:3 - -- Watch See on Rev 3:2.

Watch

See on Rev 3:2.

Vincent: Rev 3:3 - -- On thee Omit.

On thee

Omit.

Vincent: Rev 3:3 - -- As a thief ( ὡς κλεÌπτης ) Thief , as distinguished from hp λῃστηÌÏ‚ robber , a plunderer on a larger scale, who secures hi...

As a thief ( ὡς κλεÌπτης )

Thief , as distinguished from hp λῃστηÌÏ‚ robber , a plunderer on a larger scale, who secures his booty not by stealth, but by violence. Hence the word is appropriate here to mark the unexpected and stealthy coming of the Lord. Compare 1Th 5:2, 1Th 5:4; 2Pe 3:10.

Vincent: Rev 3:3 - -- Thou shalt not know what hour l will come upon thee The Greek proverb says that the feet of the avenging deities are shod with wool. The sentimen...

Thou shalt not know what hour l will come upon thee

The Greek proverb says that the feet of the avenging deities are shod with wool. The sentiment is voiced in the two following fragments from Aeschylus:

" Whether one sleep or walk or sit at ease,

Unseen and voiceless Justice dogs his steps,

Striking athwart his path from right or left;

Nor what is foully done will night conceal:

Whate'er thou doest some God beholdeth thee."

" And dost thou deem that thou shalt e'er o'ercome

Wisdom divine? That retribution lies

Somewhere remote from mortals? Close at hand,

Unseen itself, it sees and knows full well

Whom it befits to smite. But thou know'st not

The hour when, swift and sudden, it shall come

And sweep away the wicked from the earth."

Vincent: Rev 3:4 - -- Thou hast a few names The best texts insert ἀλλὰ but between these words and the close of the preceding verse. So Rev. But , notwithst...

Thou hast a few names

The best texts insert ἀλλὰ but between these words and the close of the preceding verse. So Rev. But , notwithstanding the general apathy of the Church, thou hast a few, etc. Compare Rev 3:1, thou hast a name , and see on Rev 11:13. Names is equivalent to persons , a few who may be rightly named as exceptions to the general conception.

Vincent: Rev 3:4 - -- Even in Sardis Omit καὶ even .

Even in Sardis

Omit καὶ even .

Vincent: Rev 3:4 - -- Defiled ( ἐμοÌλυναν ) See on 1Pe 1:4.

Defiled ( ἐμοÌλυναν )

See on 1Pe 1:4.

Vincent: Rev 3:4 - -- Garments See the same figure, Jud 1:23. The meaning is, have not sullied the purity of their Christian life.

Garments

See the same figure, Jud 1:23. The meaning is, have not sullied the purity of their Christian life.

Vincent: Rev 3:4 - -- In white ( ἐν λευκοῖς ) With ἱματιÌοις garments understood. See on Rev 2:17, and compare Zec 3:3, Zec 3:5. " White colo...

In white ( ἐν λευκοῖς )

With ἱματιÌοις garments understood. See on Rev 2:17, and compare Zec 3:3, Zec 3:5. " White colors are suitable to the gods" (Plato, " Laws," xii., 956). So Virgil, of the tenants of Elysium:

" Lo, priests of holy life and chaste while they in life had part;

Lo, god-loved poets, men who spake things worthy Phoebus' heart:

And they who bettered life on earth by new-found mastery;

And they whose good deeds left a tale for men to name them by:

And all they had their brows about with snowy fillets bound."

" Aeneid ," vi ., 661-665

Vincent: Rev 3:4 - -- The same shall be clothed ( οὗτος πεÏιβαλεῖται ) For οὗτος this , or the same , read οὑÌτως thus : "...

The same shall be clothed ( οὗτος πεÏιβαλεῖται )

For οὗτος this , or the same , read οὑÌτως thus : " shall thus be arrayed." so Rev. The verb denotes a solemn investiture, and means literally to throw or put around .

Vincent: Rev 3:5 - -- Book of life Lit., the book of the life . For the figure, see Exo 32:32; Psa 69:28; Dan 12:1; Phi 4:3. Compare Luk 10:20; Heb 12:23.

Book of life

Lit., the book of the life . For the figure, see Exo 32:32; Psa 69:28; Dan 12:1; Phi 4:3. Compare Luk 10:20; Heb 12:23.

Vincent: Rev 3:5 - -- I will confess ( ἐξομλογηÌσομαι ) Openly confess (ἐξ ). See on Mat 11:25; see on Act 19:18; see on Jam 5:16.

I will confess ( ἐξομλογηÌσομαι )

Openly confess (ἐξ ). See on Mat 11:25; see on Act 19:18; see on Jam 5:16.

Vincent: Rev 3:7 - -- Philadelphia Seventy-five miles southeast of Sardis. The second city in Lydia. The adjacent region was celebrated as a wine-growing district, and...

Philadelphia

Seventy-five miles southeast of Sardis. The second city in Lydia. The adjacent region was celebrated as a wine-growing district, and its coins bore the head of Bacchus and the figure of a Bacchante. The population included Jews, Jewish Christians, and converts from heathenism. It suffered from frequent earthquakes. Of all the seven churches it had the longest duration of prosperity as a Christian city. It still exists as a Turkish town under the name of Allah Shehr , City of God . The situation is picturesque, the town being built on four or five hills, and well supplied with trees, and the climate is healthful. One of the mosques is believed by the native Christians to have been the gathering-place of the church addressed in Revelation. " One solitary pillar of high antiquity has been often noticed as reminding beholders of the words in Rev 3:12 : 'Him that overcometh will I make a pillar in the temple of my God.'"

Vincent: Rev 3:7 - -- He that is holy ( ὁ ἁÌγιος ) See on Act 26:10. Christ is called holy , Act 2:27; Act 13:35; Heb 7:26; in all which passages the word,...

He that is holy ( ὁ ἁÌγιος )

See on Act 26:10. Christ is called holy , Act 2:27; Act 13:35; Heb 7:26; in all which passages the word, however, is ὁÌσιος , which is holy by sanction , applied to one who diligently observes all the sanctities of religion. It is appropriate to Christ, therefore, as being the one in whom these eternal sanctities are grounded and reside. ἉÌγιος , the word used here, refers rather to separation from evil.

Vincent: Rev 3:7 - -- He that is true ( ὁ ἀληθινὸς ) See on Joh 1:9. Αληθινὸς is not merely, genuine as contrasted with the absolutely fals...

He that is true ( ὁ ἀληθινὸς )

See on Joh 1:9. Αληθινὸς is not merely, genuine as contrasted with the absolutely false, but as contrasted with that which is only subordinately or typically true. It expresses the perfect realization of an idea as contrasted with its partial realization. Thus, Moses gave bread, but the Father giveth the true bread (τὸν ἀÌÏτον τὸν ἀληθινοÌν ). Israel was a vine of God's planting (Psa 80:8), Christ is the true (ἡ ἀληθινὴ ) vine (Joh 15:1). The word is so characteristic of John that, while found only once in the Synoptic Gospels, once in a Pauline Epistle, and four times in the Epistle to the Hebrews, it occurs nine times in the fourth Gospel, four times in John's First Epistle, and ten times in Revelation, and in every instance in these three latter books in its own distinctive signification.

Vincent: Rev 3:7 - -- The key of David See on Rev 1:18, and compare Isa 22:22. David is the type of Christ, the supreme ruler of the kingdom of heaven. See Jer 30:9; E...

The key of David

See on Rev 1:18, and compare Isa 22:22. David is the type of Christ, the supreme ruler of the kingdom of heaven. See Jer 30:9; Eze 34:23; Eze 37:24. The house of David is the typical designation of the kingdom of Jesus Christ (Psa 122:5). The holding of the keys, the symbols of power, thus belongs to Christ as Lord of the kingdom and Church of God. See on Mat 16:19 : He admits and excludes at His pleasure.

Vincent: Rev 3:7 - -- No man shutteth ( οὐδεὶς κλειÌει ) Read κλειÌσει shall shut So Rev.

No man shutteth ( οὐδεὶς κλειÌει )

Read κλειÌσει shall shut So Rev.

Vincent: Rev 3:8 - -- I have set ( δεÌδωκα ) Lit., I have given . For a similar phrase see Luk 12:51.

I have set ( δεÌδωκα )

Lit., I have given . For a similar phrase see Luk 12:51.

Vincent: Rev 3:8 - -- An open door ( θυÌÏαν ἀνεῳγμεÌνην ) Rev., more literally, a door opened. This is variously explained. Some refer it to the e...

An open door ( θυÌÏαν ἀνεῳγμεÌνην )

Rev., more literally, a door opened. This is variously explained. Some refer it to the entrance into the joy of the Lord; others to the initiation into the meaning of scripture; others again to the opportunity for the mission-work of the Church. In this last sense the phrase is often used by Paul. See 1Co 16:9; 2Co 2:12; Col 4:3. Compare Act 14:27. I have given is appropriate, since all opportunities of service are gifts of God. See on Rev 2:7.

Vincent: Rev 3:8 - -- For thou hast ( ὁÌτι ἐÌχεις ) Some texts make behold-shut parenthetical, and render ὁÌτι that , defining thy works , et...

For thou hast ( ὁÌτι ἐÌχεις )

Some texts make behold-shut parenthetical, and render ὁÌτι that , defining thy works , etc. So Rev.

Vincent: Rev 3:8 - -- A little strength ( μικÏὰν δυÌναμιν ) This would mean, thou hast some power, though small. Many, however, omit the indefinite a...

A little strength ( μικÏὰν δυÌναμιν )

This would mean, thou hast some power, though small. Many, however, omit the indefinite article in translating, and render thou hast little strength ; i.e., thou art poor in numbers and worldly resources . So Alford, Trench, and Düsterdieck.

Vincent: Rev 3:8 - -- And ( καὶ ) John's single copula instead of a particle of logical connection. See on Joh 1:10; see on Joh 6:46; see on 1Jo 1:5; see on Joh 8...

And ( καὶ )

John's single copula instead of a particle of logical connection. See on Joh 1:10; see on Joh 6:46; see on 1Jo 1:5; see on Joh 8:20.

Vincent: Rev 3:8 - -- Hast kept my word ( ἐτηÌÏησαÌÏ‚ μου τὸν λοÌγον ) Rev., rendering the aorist more strictly, didst keep . For the phras...

Hast kept my word ( ἐτηÌÏησαÌÏ‚ μου τὸν λοÌγον )

Rev., rendering the aorist more strictly, didst keep . For the phrase, see Joh 17:6, Joh 17:8.

Vincent: Rev 3:9 - -- I will make ( διÌδωμι ) Rev., rightly, I give . See on Rev 3:8. The sense is broken off there and resumed here.

I will make ( διÌδωμι )

Rev., rightly, I give . See on Rev 3:8. The sense is broken off there and resumed here.

Vincent: Rev 3:9 - -- Of the synagogue ( ἐκ τῆς συναγωγῆς ) Certain ones of the synagogue. Most interpreters refer to the Jews. Others explain more...

Of the synagogue ( ἐκ τῆς συναγωγῆς )

Certain ones of the synagogue. Most interpreters refer to the Jews. Others explain more generally, of the bowing down of the Church's enemies at her feet. Trench refers to a passage in the Epistle of Ignatius to this Philadelphian church, implying the actual presence in the midst of it of converts from Judaism, who preached the faith which they once persecuted.

Vincent: Rev 3:9 - -- Of Satan See on Rev 2:9.

Of Satan

See on Rev 2:9.

Vincent: Rev 3:9 - -- I will make them to come ( ποιηÌσω αὐτοὺς ἱÌνα ἡÌξωσιν ) Lit., I will make them that they shall co...

I will make them to come ( ποιηÌσω αὐτοὺς ἱÌνα ἡÌξωσιν )

Lit., I will make them that they shall come .

Vincent: Rev 3:9 - -- Worship before thy feet Compare Isa 60:14; Isa 49:23.

Worship before thy feet

Compare Isa 60:14; Isa 49:23.

Vincent: Rev 3:10 - -- The word of my patience ( τὸν λοÌγον τῆς ὑπομονῆς μου ) Not the words which Christ has spoken concerning patience,...

The word of my patience ( τὸν λοÌγον τῆς ὑπομονῆς μου )

Not the words which Christ has spoken concerning patience, but the word of Christ which requires patience to keep it; the gospel which teaches the need o£ a patient waiting for Christ. On patience , see on 2Pe 1:6; see on Jam 5:7.

Vincent: Rev 3:10 - -- From the hour ( ἐκ ) The preposition implies, not a keeping from temptation, but a keeping in temptation, as the result of which they sha...

From the hour ( ἐκ )

The preposition implies, not a keeping from temptation, but a keeping in temptation, as the result of which they shall be delivered out of its power. Compare Joh 17:15.

Vincent: Rev 3:10 - -- Of temptation ( τοῦ πειÏασμοῦ ) Lit., " of the trial" See on Mat 6:13; see on 1Pe 1:7. Rev., trial .

Of temptation ( τοῦ πειÏασμοῦ )

Lit., " of the trial" See on Mat 6:13; see on 1Pe 1:7. Rev., trial .

Vincent: Rev 3:10 - -- World ( οἰκουμεÌνης ) See on Luk 2:1

World ( οἰκουμεÌνης )

See on Luk 2:1

Vincent: Rev 3:11 - -- Behold Omit.

Behold

Omit.

Vincent: Rev 3:11 - -- That no one take thy crown ( ἱÌνα μηδεὶς λαÌβῃ τὸν στεÌφανον ) Take it away. The idea is not that of one belie...

That no one take thy crown ( ἱÌνα μηδεὶς λαÌβῃ τὸν στεÌφανον )

Take it away. The idea is not that of one believer stepping into the place which was designed for another, but of an enemy taking away from another the reward which he himself has forfeited. The expression is explained by Col 2:18. It is related by Mahomet that, after having attempted, in vain, to convert one Abdallah to the faith, and having been told by him to go about his business and to preach only to those who should come to him - he went, downcast, to a friend's house. His friend, perceiving that he was sad, asked him the reason; and on being told of Abdallah's insult, said, " Treat him gently; for I swear that when God sent thee to us, we had already strung pearls to crown him, and he seeth that thou hast snatched the kingdom out of his grasp." For crown, see on Rev 2:10. Thy crown is not the crown which thou hast , but the crown which thou shalt have if thou shalt prove faithful.

Vincent: Rev 3:12 - -- Pillar ( στυÌλον ) The word occurs, Gal 2:9; 1Ti 3:15; Rev 10:1. The reference here is not to any prominence in the earthly church, as Gal...

Pillar ( στυÌλον )

The word occurs, Gal 2:9; 1Ti 3:15; Rev 10:1. The reference here is not to any prominence in the earthly church, as Gal 2:9, but to blessedness in the future state. The exact meaning is doubtful. Some explain, he shall have a fixed and important place in the glorified church . Compare Mat 19:28. Others emphasize the idea of stability , and find a possible local reference to the frequent earthquakes from which Philadelphia had suffered, and which had shaken its temples. Strabo says: " And Philadelphia has not even its walls unimpaired, but daily they are shaken in some way, and gaps are made in them. But the inhabitants continue to occupy the land notwithstanding their sufferings, and to build new houses." Others again emphasize the idea of beauty . Compare 1Pe 2:5, where the saints are described living stones .

Vincent: Rev 3:12 - -- Temple ( ναῷ ) See on Mat 4:5.

Temple ( ναῷ )

See on Mat 4:5.

Vincent: Rev 3:12 - -- Upon him The conqueror , not the pillar . Compare Rev 7:3; Rev 9:4; Rev 14:1; Rev 22:4. Probably with reference to the golden plate inscrib...

Upon him

The conqueror , not the pillar . Compare Rev 7:3; Rev 9:4; Rev 14:1; Rev 22:4. Probably with reference to the golden plate inscribed with the name of Jehovah, and worn by the High-Priest upon his forehead (Exo 28:36, Exo 28:38). See on Rev 2:17.

Vincent: Rev 3:12 - -- New Jerusalem See Eze 48:35. The believer whose brow is adorned with this name has the freedom of the heavenly city. Even on earth his commonweal...

New Jerusalem

See Eze 48:35. The believer whose brow is adorned with this name has the freedom of the heavenly city. Even on earth his commonwealth is in heaven (Phi 3:20). " Still, his citizenship was latent: he was one of God's hidden ones; but now he is openly avouched, and has a right to enter in by the gates to the city" (Trench). The city is called by John, the great and holy (Rev 21:10); by Matthew, the holy city (Mat 4:5); by Paul, Jerusalem which is above (Gal 4:6); by the writer to the Hebrews, the city of the living God , the heavenly Jerusalem (Heb 12:22). Plato calls his ideal city Callipolis , the fair city (" Republic," vii., 527), and the name Ouranopolis , heavenly city , was applied to Rome and Byzantium. For new (καινῆς ), see on Mat 26:29. The new Jerusalem is not a city freshly built (νεÌα ), but is new (καινὴ ) in contrast with the old, outworn, sinful city. In the Gospel John habitually uses the Greek and civil form of the name, ἸεÏοσοÌλυμα ; in Revelation, the Hebrew and more holy appellation, ἱεÏουσαÌλημ .

Vincent: Rev 3:14 - -- Of the Laodiceans ( ΑαοδικεÌων ) Read ἐν ΑαοδικειÌᾳ in Laodicea . Laodicea means justice of the people . As L...

Of the Laodiceans ( ΑαοδικεÌων )

Read ἐν ΑαοδικειÌᾳ in Laodicea . Laodicea means justice of the people . As Laodice was a common name among the ladies of the royal house of the Seleucidae, the name was given to several cities in Syria and Asia Minor. The one here addressed was on the confines of Phrygia and Lydia, about forty miles east of Ephesus, and was known as Laodicea on the Lycus. It had born successively the names of Diospolis and Rhoas, and was named Laodicea when refounded by Antiochus Theos, b.c. 261-246. It was situated on a group of hills between two tributaries of the Lycus - the Asopus and the Caprus. Towards the end of the Roman Republic, and under the first emperors, it became one of the most important and flourishing cities of Asia Minor. One of its citizens, Hiero, bequeathed all his enormous property to the people, and adorned the city with costly gifts. It was the seat of large money transactions and of an extensive trade in wood. The citizens developed a taste for Greek art, and were distinguished in science and literature. Laodicea was the seat of a great medical school. During the Roman period it was the chief city of a Roman conventus or political district, in which courts were held by the proconsul of the province, and where the taxes from the subordinate towns were collected. Cicero held his court there, and many of his letters were written thence. The conventus represented by Laodicea comprised not less than twenty-five towns, and inscriptions refer to the city as " the metropolis." The Greek word διοιÌκηδις , corresponding to the Latin conventus was subsequently applied to an ecclesiastical district, and appears in diocese . The tutelary deity of the city was Zeus (Jupiter). Hence its earlier name, Diospolis , or City of Zeus . Many of its inhabitants were Jews. It was subject to frequent earthquakes, which eventually resulted in its abandonment. It is now a deserted place, but its ruins indicate by their magnitude its former importance. Among these are a racecourse, and three theatres, one of which is four hundred and fifty feet in diameter. An important church council was held there in the fourth century.

Vincent: Rev 3:14 - -- The Amen Used only here as a proper name. See Isa 65:16, where the correct rendering is the God of the Amen , instead of A.V. God of ...

The Amen

Used only here as a proper name. See Isa 65:16, where the correct rendering is the God of the Amen , instead of A.V. God of truth . The term applied to the Lord signifies that He Himself is the fulfilment of all that God has spoken to the churches.

Vincent: Rev 3:14 - -- Faithful ( πιστοÌÏ‚ ) The word occurs in the New Testament in two senses: trusty , faithful Mat 24:45; Mat 25:21, Mat 25:23; Luk 12:42);...

Faithful ( πιστοÌÏ‚ )

The word occurs in the New Testament in two senses: trusty , faithful Mat 24:45; Mat 25:21, Mat 25:23; Luk 12:42); and believing , confiding (Joh 20:27; Gal 3:9; Act 16:1). Of God, necessarily only in the former sense.

Vincent: Rev 3:14 - -- True ( ἀληθινὸς ) See on Rev 3:7. The veracity of Christ is thus asserted in the word faithful , true being not true as disting...

True ( ἀληθινὸς )

See on Rev 3:7. The veracity of Christ is thus asserted in the word faithful , true being not true as distinguished from false , but true to the normal idea of a witness .

Vincent: Rev 3:14 - -- The beginning ( ἡ ἀÏÏ‡Î·Ì ) The beginner , or author ; not as Col 1:15, the first and most excellent creature of God's...

The beginning ( ἡ ἀÏÏ‡Î·Ì )

The beginner , or author ; not as Col 1:15, the first and most excellent creature of God's hands . " The stress laid in the Epistle to the Colossians on the inferiority of those to whom the self-same name of ἀÏχαὶ , beginnings principalities was given... to the One who was the true beginning, or, if we might venture on an unfamiliar use of a familiar word, the true Principality of God's creation, may account for the prominence which the name had gained, and therefore for its use here in a message addressed to a church exposed, like that of Colossae, to the risks of angelolatry, of the substitution of lower principalities and created mediators for Him who was the Head over all things to His Church" (Plumptre). Compare Heb 12:2, ἀÏχηγὸν leader .

Vincent: Rev 3:15 - -- Cold ( ψυχÏοÌÏ‚ ) Attached to the world and actively opposed to the Church. " This," as Alford remarks, " as well as the opposite state of...

Cold ( ψυχÏοÌÏ‚ )

Attached to the world and actively opposed to the Church. " This," as Alford remarks, " as well as the opposite state of spiritual fervor, would be an intelligible and plainly-marked condition; at all events free from the danger of mixed motive and disregarded principle which belongs to the lukewarm state: inasmuch as a man in earnest, be he right or wrong, is ever a better man than one professing what he does not feel."

Vincent: Rev 3:15 - -- Hot ( ζεστοÌÏ‚ ) From ζεÌω to boil or seethe . See on fervent , Act 18:25.

Hot ( ζεστοÌÏ‚ )

From ζεÌω to boil or seethe . See on fervent , Act 18:25.

Vincent: Rev 3:16 - -- Lukewarm ( χλιαÏοÌÏ‚ ) Only here in the New Testament. Foremost and most numerous among the lost, Dante places those who had been content...

Lukewarm ( χλιαÏοÌÏ‚ )

Only here in the New Testament.

Foremost and most numerous among the lost, Dante places those who had been content to remain neutral in the great contest between good and evil.

" Master, what is this which now I hear?

What folk is this, which seems by pain so vanquished?

And he to me: " This miserable mode

Maintain the melancholy souls of those

Who lived withouten infamy or praise.

Commingled are they with that caitiff choir.

Of angels, who have not rebellious been,

Nor faithful were to God, but were for self.

The heavens expelled them, not to be less fair;

Nor them the nethermore abyss receives,

For glory none the damned would have from them."

" Inferno ," iii ., 33-42 .

Vincent: Rev 3:16 - -- I will ( μεÌλλω ) I am about or have in mind . Not a declaration of immediate and inexorable doom, but implying a possibility ...

I will ( μεÌλλω )

I am about or have in mind . Not a declaration of immediate and inexorable doom, but implying a possibility of the determination being changed.

Vincent: Rev 3:16 - -- Spue ( ἐμεÌσαι ) Only here in the New Testament. Compare Lev 18:28; Lev 20:22.

Spue ( ἐμεÌσαι )

Only here in the New Testament. Compare Lev 18:28; Lev 20:22.

Vincent: Rev 3:17 - -- Because thou sayest Connect, as A.V. and Rev., with what follows, not with what precedes. Some interpret I will spue thee out of my ...

Because thou sayest

Connect, as A.V. and Rev., with what follows, not with what precedes. Some interpret I will spue thee out of my mouth because thou sayest , etc.

Vincent: Rev 3:17 - -- Increased with goods ( πεπλουÌτηκα ) Rev., have gotten riches . The reference is to imagined spiritual riches, not to worldly p...

Increased with goods ( πεπλουÌτηκα )

Rev., have gotten riches . The reference is to imagined spiritual riches, not to worldly possessions.

Vincent: Rev 3:17 - -- Thou Emphatic.

Thou

Emphatic.

Vincent: Rev 3:17 - -- Wretched ( ὁ ταλαιÌπωÏος ) Rev., better, giving the force of the article, the wretched one . From τλαÌω to endure , an...

Wretched ( ὁ ταλαιÌπωÏος )

Rev., better, giving the force of the article, the wretched one . From τλαÌω to endure , and πειÏÎ±Ì a trial .

Vincent: Rev 3:17 - -- Miserable ( ἐλεεινοÌÏ‚ ) Only here and 1Co 15:19. An object of pity (ἐÌλεος ).

Miserable ( ἐλεεινοÌÏ‚ )

Only here and 1Co 15:19. An object of pity (ἐÌλεος ).

Vincent: Rev 3:17 - -- Poor ( πτωχοÌÏ‚ ) See on Mat 5:3.

Poor ( πτωχοÌÏ‚ )

See on Mat 5:3.

Vincent: Rev 3:18 - -- I counsel ( συμβουλευÌω ) With a certain irony. Though He might command, yet He advises those who are, in their own estimation, suppli...

I counsel ( συμβουλευÌω )

With a certain irony. Though He might command, yet He advises those who are, in their own estimation, supplied with everything.

Vincent: Rev 3:18 - -- To buy Compare Isa 4:1; Mat 13:44, Mat 13:46. Those who think themselves rich, and yet have just been called beggars by the Lord, are advised b...

To buy

Compare Isa 4:1; Mat 13:44, Mat 13:46. Those who think themselves rich, and yet have just been called beggars by the Lord, are advised by Him to buy. The irony, however, covers a sincere and gracious invitation. The goods of Christ are freely given, yet they have their price - renunciation of self and of the world.

Vincent: Rev 3:18 - -- Gold ( χÏυσιÌον ) Often of gold money or ornaments . So 1Pe 1:18; Act 3:6; 1Pe 3:3. Also of native gold and gold which has been smel...

Gold ( χÏυσιÌον )

Often of gold money or ornaments . So 1Pe 1:18; Act 3:6; 1Pe 3:3. Also of native gold and gold which has been smelted and wrought (Heb 9:4). There may very properly be a reference to the extensive money transactions of Laodicea.

Vincent: Rev 3:18 - -- Tried in the fire ( πεπυÏωμεÌνον ἐκ ποÏὸς ) The verb means to burn , to be on fire: in the perfect passive, as ...

Tried in the fire ( πεπυÏωμεÌνον ἐκ ποÏὸς )

The verb means to burn , to be on fire: in the perfect passive, as here, kindled , made to glow ; thence melted by fire , and so refined . Rev., refined by , fire . By fire is, literally, out of the fire (ἐκ ; see on Rev 2:7).

Vincent: Rev 3:18 - -- White raiment Rev., garments . See on Rev 3:4.

White raiment

Rev., garments . See on Rev 3:4.

Vincent: Rev 3:18 - -- Mayest be clothed ( πεÏιβαÌλῃ ) Rev., more literally, mayest clothe thyself . See on Rev 3:5.

Mayest be clothed ( πεÏιβαÌλῃ )

Rev., more literally, mayest clothe thyself . See on Rev 3:5.

Vincent: Rev 3:18 - -- Do not appear ( μὴ φανεÏωθῇ ) Rev., more literally, be not made manifest . See on Joh 21:1. Stripping and exposure is a fr...

Do not appear ( μὴ φανεÏωθῇ )

Rev., more literally, be not made manifest . See on Joh 21:1. Stripping and exposure is a frequent method of putting to open shame. See 2Sa 10:4; Isa 20:4; Isa 47:2-3; Eze 16:37. Compare also Mat 22:11-13; Col 3:10-14.

Vincent: Rev 3:18 - -- Anoint thine eyes with eye-salve ( κολλουÌÏιον ἐÌγχÏισον τοὺς ὀφθαλμουÌÏ‚ σου ) The correct reading is ...

Anoint thine eyes with eye-salve ( κολλουÌÏιον ἐÌγχÏισον τοὺς ὀφθαλμουÌÏ‚ σου )

The correct reading is ἐÌγχÏισαι , the infinitive, to anoint , instead of the imperative. So Rev., eye-salve to anoint thine eyes . ΚολλουÌÏιον , of which the Latin collyrium is a transcript, is a diminutive of κολλυÌÏα a roll of coarse bread . See 1Ki 14:3, Sept.; A.V., cracknels . Here applied to a roll or stick of ointment for the eyes. Horace, describing his Brundisian journey, relates how, at one point, he was troubled with inflamed eyes, and anointed them with black eye-salve ( nigra collyria . Sat., i., v., 30). Juvenal, describing a superstitious woman, says: " If the corner of her eye itches when rubbed, she consults her horoscope before calling for salve " ( collyria ; vi., 577). The figure sets forth the spiritual anointing by which the spiritual vision is purged. Compare Augustine, " Confessions," vii., 7, 8. " Through my own swelling was I separated from Thee; yea, my pride-swollen face closed up mine eyes.... It was pleasing in Thy sight to reform my deformities; and by inward goads didst Thou rouse me, that I should be ill at ease until Thou wert manifested to my inward sight. Thus, by the secret hand of Thy medicining, was my swelling abated, and the troubled and bedimmed eyesight of my mind, by the smarting anointings of healthful sorrows, was from day to day healed." Compare 1Jo 2:20, 1Jo 2:27.

Vincent: Rev 3:19 - -- As many as I love In the Greek order I stands first as emphatic.

As many as I love

In the Greek order I stands first as emphatic.

Vincent: Rev 3:19 - -- Rebuke ( ἐλεÌγχω ) See on Joh 3:20. Rev., reprove .

Rebuke ( ἐλεÌγχω )

See on Joh 3:20. Rev., reprove .

Vincent: Rev 3:19 - -- Chasten ( παιδευÌω ) See on Luk 23:16.

Chasten ( παιδευÌω )

See on Luk 23:16.

Vincent: Rev 3:19 - -- Be zealous ( ζηÌλευε ) The verb is akin to ζεστοÌÏ‚ hot in Rev 3:16, on which see note.

Be zealous ( ζηÌλευε )

The verb is akin to ζεστοÌÏ‚ hot in Rev 3:16, on which see note.

Vincent: Rev 3:19 - -- Repent See on Mat 3:2; see on Mat 20:29.

Repent

See on Mat 3:2; see on Mat 20:29.

Vincent: Rev 3:20 - -- I stand at the door and knock Compare Son 5:2, ΚÏουÌω I knock was regarded as a less classical word than κοÌπτω . ΚÏουÌω i...

I stand at the door and knock

Compare Son 5:2, ΚÏουÌω I knock was regarded as a less classical word than κοÌπτω . ΚÏουÌω is to knock with the knuckles , to rap ; κοÌπτω , with a heavy blow ; ψοφεῖν of the knocking of some one within the door, warning one without to withdraw when the door is opened. Compare Jam 5:9. " He at whose door we ought to stand (for He is the Door, who, as such, has bidden us to knock), is content that the whole relation between Him and us should be reversed, and, instead of our standing at His door, condescends Himself to stand at ours" (Trench). The Greeks had a word θυÏαυλεῖν for a lover waiting at the door of his beloved. Trench cites a passage from Nicolaus Cabasilas, a Greek divine of the fourteenth century: " Love for men emptied God (Phi 2:7). For He doth not abide in His place and summon to Himself the servant whom He loved; but goes Himself and seeks him; and He who is rich comes to the dwelling of the poor, and discloses His love, and seeks an equal return; nor does He withdraw from him who repels Him, nor is He disgusted at his insolence; but, pursuing him, remains sitting at his doors, and that He may show him the one who loves him, He does all things, and sorrowing, bears and dies."

Vincent: Rev 3:20 - -- My voice Christ not only knocks but speaks. " The voice very often will interpret and make intelligible the purpose of the knock" (Trench).

My voice

Christ not only knocks but speaks. " The voice very often will interpret and make intelligible the purpose of the knock" (Trench).

Vincent: Rev 3:20 - -- Hear - open the door No irresistible grace.

Hear - open the door

No irresistible grace.

Vincent: Rev 3:20 - -- Will sup ( δειπνηÌσω ) See on Luk 14:12. For the image, compare Son 5:2-6; Son 4:16; Son 2:3. Christ is the Bread of Life, and invites t...

Will sup ( δειπνηÌσω )

See on Luk 14:12. For the image, compare Son 5:2-6; Son 4:16; Son 2:3. Christ is the Bread of Life, and invites to the great feast. See Mat 8:11; Mat 25:1 sqq. The consummation will be at the marriage-supper of the Lamb (Mar 14:25; Rev 19:7-9).

Vincent: Rev 3:20 - -- He with me It is characteristic of John to note the sayings of Christ which express the reciprocal relations of Himself and His followers. See ...

He with me

It is characteristic of John to note the sayings of Christ which express the reciprocal relations of Himself and His followers. See Joh 6:56; Joh 10:38; Joh 14:20; Joh 15:4, Joh 15:5; Joh 17:21, Joh 17:26. Compare Joh 14:23.

Vincent: Rev 3:21 - -- He that overcometh See on Rev 2:7.

He that overcometh

See on Rev 2:7.

Wesley: Rev 3:3 - -- Humbly, zealously, seriously. Thou didst receive the grace of God once, and hear - His word.

Humbly, zealously, seriously. Thou didst receive the grace of God once, and hear - His word.

Wesley: Rev 3:3 - -- The grace thou hast received.

The grace thou hast received.

Wesley: Rev 3:3 - -- According to the word thou hast heard.

According to the word thou hast heard.

Wesley: Rev 3:4 - -- That is, persons. But though few, they had not separated themselves from the rest; otherwise, the angel of Sardis would not have had them. Yet it was ...

That is, persons. But though few, they had not separated themselves from the rest; otherwise, the angel of Sardis would not have had them. Yet it was no virtue of his, that they were unspotted; whereas it was his fault that they were but few.

Wesley: Rev 3:4 - -- Either by spotting themselves, or by partaking of other men's sins.

Either by spotting themselves, or by partaking of other men's sins.

Wesley: Rev 3:4 - -- in joy; in perfect holiness; in glory.

in joy; in perfect holiness; in glory.

Wesley: Rev 3:4 - -- A few good among many bad are doubly acceptable to God. O how much happier is this worthiness than that mentioned, Rev 16:6.

A few good among many bad are doubly acceptable to God. O how much happier is this worthiness than that mentioned, Rev 16:6.

Wesley: Rev 3:5 - -- The colour of victory, joy, and triumph.

The colour of victory, joy, and triumph.

Wesley: Rev 3:5 - -- Like that of the angel of the church at Sardis: but he shall live for ever.

Like that of the angel of the church at Sardis: but he shall live for ever.

Wesley: Rev 3:5 - -- As one of my faithful servants and soldiers.

As one of my faithful servants and soldiers.

Wesley: Rev 3:7 - -- Two great and glorious names He that hath the key of David - A master of a family, or a prince, has one or more keys, wherewith he can open and shut a...

Two great and glorious names He that hath the key of David - A master of a family, or a prince, has one or more keys, wherewith he can open and shut all the doors of his house or palace. So had David a key, a token of right and sovereignty, which was afterward adjudged to Eliakim, Isa 22:22. Much more has Christ, the Son of David, the key of the spiritual city of David, the New Jerusalem; the supreme right, power, and authority, as in his own house. He openeth this to all that overcome, and none shutteth: he shutteth it against all the fearful, and none openeth. Likewise when he openeth a door on earth for his works or his servants, none can shut; and when he shutteth against whatever would hurt or defile, none can open.

Wesley: Rev 3:8 - -- To enter into the joy of thy Lord; and, meantime, to go on unhindered in every good work.

To enter into the joy of thy Lord; and, meantime, to go on unhindered in every good work.

Wesley: Rev 3:8 - -- But little outward human strength; a little, poor, mean, despicable company.

But little outward human strength; a little, poor, mean, despicable company.

Wesley: Rev 3:8 - -- Both in judgment and practice.

Both in judgment and practice.

Wesley: Rev 3:9 - -- who have all power; and they must then comply.

who have all power; and they must then comply.

Wesley: Rev 3:9 - -- Pay thee the lowest homage.

Pay thee the lowest homage.

Wesley: Rev 3:9 - -- At length, that all depends on my love, and that thou hast a place therein. O how often does the judgment of the people turn quite round, when the Lor...

At length, that all depends on my love, and that thou hast a place therein. O how often does the judgment of the people turn quite round, when the Lord looketh upon them! Job 42:7, &c.

Wesley: Rev 3:10 - -- The word of Christ is indeed a word of patience.

The word of Christ is indeed a word of patience.

Wesley: Rev 3:10 - -- O happy exemption from that spreading calamity! From the hour of temptation - So that thou shalt not enter into temptation; but it shall pass over the...

O happy exemption from that spreading calamity! From the hour of temptation - So that thou shalt not enter into temptation; but it shall pass over thee. The hour denotes the short time of its continuance; that is, at any one place. At every one it was very sharp, though short; wherein the great tempter was not idle, Rev 2:10.

Wesley: Rev 3:10 - -- The whole Roman empire. It went over the Christians, and over the Jews and heathens; though in a very different manner. This was the time of the perse...

The whole Roman empire. It went over the Christians, and over the Jews and heathens; though in a very different manner. This was the time of the persecution under the seemingly virtuous emperor Trajan. The two preceding persecutions were under those monsters, Nero and Domitian; but Trajan was so admired for his goodness, and his persecution was of such a nature, that it was a temptation indeed, and did throughly try them that dwelt upon the earth.

Wesley: Rev 3:11 - -- Which is ready for thee, if thou endure to the end.

Which is ready for thee, if thou endure to the end.

Wesley: Rev 3:12 - -- I will fix him as beautiful, as useful, and as immovable as a pillar in the church of God.

I will fix him as beautiful, as useful, and as immovable as a pillar in the church of God.

Wesley: Rev 3:12 - -- But shall be holy and happy for ever.

But shall be holy and happy for ever.

Wesley: Rev 3:12 - -- So that the nature and image of God shall appear visibly upon him.

So that the nature and image of God shall appear visibly upon him.

Wesley: Rev 3:12 - -- Giving him a title to dwell in the New Jerusalem.

Giving him a title to dwell in the New Jerusalem.

Wesley: Rev 3:12 - -- A share in that joy which I entered into, after overcoming all my enemies.

A share in that joy which I entered into, after overcoming all my enemies.

Wesley: Rev 3:14 - -- For these St. Paul had had a great concern, Col 2:1.

For these St. Paul had had a great concern, Col 2:1.

Wesley: Rev 3:14 - -- That is, the True One, the God of truth.

That is, the True One, the God of truth.

Wesley: Rev 3:14 - -- The Author, Prince, and Ruler.

The Author, Prince, and Ruler.

Wesley: Rev 3:14 - -- Of all creatures; the beginning, or Author, by whom God made them all.

Of all creatures; the beginning, or Author, by whom God made them all.

Wesley: Rev 3:15 - -- Thy disposition and behaviour, though thou knowest it not thyself.

Thy disposition and behaviour, though thou knowest it not thyself.

Wesley: Rev 3:15 - -- An utter stranger to the things of God, having no care or thought about them.

An utter stranger to the things of God, having no care or thought about them.

Wesley: Rev 3:15 - -- As boiling water: so ought we to be penetrated and heated by the fire of love.

As boiling water: so ought we to be penetrated and heated by the fire of love.

Wesley: Rev 3:15 - -- This wish of our Lord plainly implies that he does not work on us irresistibly, as the fire does on the water which it heats.

This wish of our Lord plainly implies that he does not work on us irresistibly, as the fire does on the water which it heats.

Wesley: Rev 3:15 - -- Even if thou wert cold, without any thought or profession of religion, there would be more hope of thy recovery.

Even if thou wert cold, without any thought or profession of religion, there would be more hope of thy recovery.

Wesley: Rev 3:16 - -- The effect of lukewarm water is well known.

The effect of lukewarm water is well known.

Wesley: Rev 3:16 - -- I will utterly cast thee from me; that is, unless thou repent.

I will utterly cast thee from me; that is, unless thou repent.

Wesley: Rev 3:17 - -- Therefore "I counsel thee," &c.

Therefore "I counsel thee," &c.

Wesley: Rev 3:17 - -- In gifts and grace, as well as worldly goods.

In gifts and grace, as well as worldly goods.

Wesley: Rev 3:17 - -- In God's account, wretched and pitiable.

In God's account, wretched and pitiable.

Wesley: Rev 3:18 - -- who art poor, and blind, and naked.

who art poor, and blind, and naked.

Wesley: Rev 3:18 - -- Without money or price.

Without money or price.

Wesley: Rev 3:18 - -- True, living faith, which is purified in the furnace of affliction.

True, living faith, which is purified in the furnace of affliction.

Wesley: Rev 3:18 - -- True holiness.

True holiness.

Wesley: Rev 3:18 - -- Spiritual illumination; the "unction of the Holy One," which teacheth all things.

Spiritual illumination; the "unction of the Holy One," which teacheth all things.

Wesley: Rev 3:19 - -- Even thee, thou poor Laodicean! O how much has his unwearied love to do! I rebuke - For what is past.

Even thee, thou poor Laodicean! O how much has his unwearied love to do! I rebuke - For what is past.

Wesley: Rev 3:19 - -- That they may amend for the time to come.

That they may amend for the time to come.

Wesley: Rev 3:20 - -- Even at this instant; while he is speaking this word.

Even at this instant; while he is speaking this word.

Wesley: Rev 3:20 - -- Willingly receive me.

Willingly receive me.

Wesley: Rev 3:20 - -- Refreshing him with my graces and gifts, and delighting myself in what I have given.

Refreshing him with my graces and gifts, and delighting myself in what I have given.

Wesley: Rev 3:20 - -- In life everlasting.

In life everlasting.

Wesley: Rev 3:21 - -- In unspeakable happiness and glory. Elsewhere, heaven itself is termed the throne of God: but this throne is in heaven.

In unspeakable happiness and glory. Elsewhere, heaven itself is termed the throne of God: but this throne is in heaven.

Wesley: Rev 3:22 - -- _This stands in the three former letters before the promise; in the four latter, after it; clearly dividing the seven into two parts; the first contai...

_This stands in the three former letters before the promise; in the four latter, after it; clearly dividing the seven into two parts; the first containing three, the last, four letters. The titles given our Lord in the three former letters peculiarly respect his power after his resurrection and ascension, particularly over his church; those in the four latter, his divine glory, and unity with the Father and the Holy Spirit. Again, this word being placed before the promises in the three former letters, excludes the false apostles at Ephesus, the false Jews at Smyrna, and the partakers with the heathens at Pergamos, from having any share therein. In the four latter, being placed after them, it leaves the promises immediately joined with Christ's address to the angel of the church, to show that the fulfilling of these was near; whereas the others reach beyond the end of the world. It should be observed, that the overcoming, or victory, (to which alone these peculiar promises are annexed,) is not the ordinary victory obtained by every believer; but a special victory over great and peculiar temptations, by those that are strong in faith.

JFB: Rev 3:3 - -- (Col 2:6; 1Th 4:1; 1Ti 6:20). What Sardis is to "remember" is, not how joyfully she had received originally the Gospel message, but how the precious ...

(Col 2:6; 1Th 4:1; 1Ti 6:20). What Sardis is to "remember" is, not how joyfully she had received originally the Gospel message, but how the precious deposit was committed to her originally, so that she could not say, she had not "received and heard" it. The Greek is not aorist (as in Rev 2:4, as to Ephesus, "Thou didst leave thy first love"), but "thou hast received" (perfect), and still hast the permanent deposit of doctrine committed to thee. The word "keep" (so the Greek is for English Version, "hold fast") which follows, accords with this sense. "Keep" or observe the commandment which thou hast received and didst hear.

JFB: Rev 3:3 - -- Greek aorist, "didst hear," namely, when the Gospel doctrine was committed to thee. TRENCH explains "how," with what demonstration of the Spirit and p...

Greek aorist, "didst hear," namely, when the Gospel doctrine was committed to thee. TRENCH explains "how," with what demonstration of the Spirit and power from Christ's ambassadors the truth came to you, and how heartily and zealously you at first received it. Similarly BENGEL, "Regard to her former character (how it once stood) ought to guard Sardis against the future hour, whatsoever it shall be, proving fatal to her." But it is not likely that the Spirit repeats the same exhortation virtually to Sardis as to Ephesus.

JFB: Rev 3:3 - -- Seeing thou art so warned, if, nevertheless, &c.

Seeing thou art so warned, if, nevertheless, &c.

JFB: Rev 3:3 - -- In special judgment on thee as a Church, with the same stealthiness and as unexpectedly as shall be My visible second coming. As the thief gives no no...

In special judgment on thee as a Church, with the same stealthiness and as unexpectedly as shall be My visible second coming. As the thief gives no notice of his approach. Christ applies the language which in its fullest sense describes His second coming, to describe His coming in special judgments on churches and states (as Jerusalem, Mat. 24:4-28) these special judgments being anticipatory earnests of that great last coming. "The last day is hidden from us, that every day may be observed by us" [AUGUSTINE]. Twice Christ in the days of His flesh spake the same words (Mat 24:42-43; Luk 12:39-40); and so deeply had His words been engraven on the minds of the apostles that they are often repeated in their writings (Rev 16:15; 1Th 5:2, 1Th 5:4, 1Th 5:6; 2Pe 3:10). The Greek proverb was that "the feet of the avenging deities are shod with wool," expressing the noiseless approach of the divine judgments, and their possible nearness at the moment when they were supposed the farthest off [TRENCH].

JFB: Rev 3:4 - -- The three oldest manuscripts prefix "but," or "nevertheless" (notwithstanding thy spiritual deadness), and omit "even."

The three oldest manuscripts prefix "but," or "nevertheless" (notwithstanding thy spiritual deadness), and omit "even."

JFB: Rev 3:4 - -- Persons named in the book of life (Rev 3:5) known by name by the Lord as His own. These had the reality corresponding to their name; not a mere name a...

Persons named in the book of life (Rev 3:5) known by name by the Lord as His own. These had the reality corresponding to their name; not a mere name among men as living, while really dead (Rev 3:1). The gracious Lord does not overlook any exceptional cases of real saints in the midst of unreal professors.

JFB: Rev 3:4 - -- Namely, the garments of their Christian profession, of which baptism is the initiatory seal, whence the candidates for baptism used in the ancient Chu...

Namely, the garments of their Christian profession, of which baptism is the initiatory seal, whence the candidates for baptism used in the ancient Church to be arrayed in white. Compare also Eph 5:27, as to the spotlessness of the Church when she shall be presented to Christ; and Rev 19:8, as to the "fine linen, clean and white, the righteousness of the saints," in which it shall be granted to her to be arrayed; and "the wedding garment." Meanwhile she is not to sully her Christian profession with any defilement of flesh or spirit, but to "keep her garments." For no defilement shall enter the heavenly city. Not that any keep themselves here wholly free from defilement; but, as compared with hollow professors, the godly keep themselves unspotted from the world; and when they do contract it, they wash it away, so as to have their "robes white in the blood of the Lamb" (Rev 7:14). The Greek is not "to stain" (Greek, "miainein"), but to "defile," or besmear (Greek, "molunein"), Son 5:3.

JFB: Rev 3:4 - -- The promised reward accords with the character of those to be rewarded: keeping their garments undefiled and white through the blood of the Lamb now, ...

The promised reward accords with the character of those to be rewarded: keeping their garments undefiled and white through the blood of the Lamb now, they shall walk with Him in while hereafter. On "with me," compare the very same words, Luk 23:43; Joh 17:24. "Walk" implies spiritual life, for only the living walk; also liberty, for it is only the free who walk at large. The grace and dignity of flowing long garments is seen to best advantage when the person "walks": so the graces of the saint's manifested character shall appear fully when he shall serve the Lord perfectly hereafter (Rev 22:3).

JFB: Rev 3:4 - -- With the worthiness (not their own, but that) which Christ has put on them (Rev 7:14). Eze 16:14, "perfect through MY comeliness which I had put upon ...

With the worthiness (not their own, but that) which Christ has put on them (Rev 7:14). Eze 16:14, "perfect through MY comeliness which I had put upon thee." Grace is glory in the bud. "The worthiness here denotes a congruity between the saint's state of grace on earth, and that of glory, which the Lord has appointed for them, about to be estimated by the law itself of grace" [VITRINGA]. Contrast Act 13:46.

JFB: Rev 3:5 - -- Not a dull white, but glittering, dazzling white [GROTIUS]. Compare Mat 13:43. The body transfigured into the likeness of Christ's body, and emitting ...

Not a dull white, but glittering, dazzling white [GROTIUS]. Compare Mat 13:43. The body transfigured into the likeness of Christ's body, and emitting beams of light reflected from Him, is probably the "white raiment" promised here.

JFB: Rev 3:5 - -- Greek, "THIS man"; he and he alone. So one oldest manuscript reads. But two oldest manuscripts, and most of the ancient versions, "shall THUS be cloth...

Greek, "THIS man"; he and he alone. So one oldest manuscript reads. But two oldest manuscripts, and most of the ancient versions, "shall THUS be clothed," &c.

JFB: Rev 3:5 - -- Greek, "garments." "He that overcometh" shall receive the same reward as they who "have not defiled their garments" (Rev 3:4); therefore the two are i...

Greek, "garments." "He that overcometh" shall receive the same reward as they who "have not defiled their garments" (Rev 3:4); therefore the two are identical.

JFB: Rev 3:5 - -- Greek, "I will not by any means."

Greek, "I will not by any means."

JFB: Rev 3:5 - -- Of the heavenly city. A register was kept in ancient cities of their citizens: the names of the dead were of course erased. So those who have a name t...

Of the heavenly city. A register was kept in ancient cities of their citizens: the names of the dead were of course erased. So those who have a name that they live and are dead (Rev 3:1), are blotted out of God's roll of the heavenly citizens and heirs of eternal life; not that in God's electing decree they ever were in His book of life. But, according to human conceptions, those who had a high name for piety would be supposed to be in it, and were, in respect to privileges, actually among those in the way of salvation; but these privileges, and the fact that they once might have been saved, shall be of no avail to them. As to the book of life, compare Rev 13:8; Rev 17:8; Rev 20:12, Rev 20:15; Rev 21:27; Exo 32:32; Psa 69:28; Dan 12:1. In the sense of the "call," many are enrolled among the called to salvation, who shall not be found among the chosen at last. The pale of salvation is wider than that of election. Election is fixed. Salvation is open to all and is pending (humanly speaking) in the case of those mentioned here. But Rev 20:15; Rev 21:27, exhibit the book of the elect alone in the narrower sense, after the erasure of the others.

JFB: Rev 3:5 - -- Greek, "in the presence of." Compare the same promise of Christ's confessing before His Father those who confessed Him, Mat 10:32-33; Luk 12:8-9. He o...

Greek, "in the presence of." Compare the same promise of Christ's confessing before His Father those who confessed Him, Mat 10:32-33; Luk 12:8-9. He omits "in heaven" after "My Father," because there is, now that He is in heaven, no contrast between the Father in heaven and the Son on earth. He now sets His seal from heaven upon many of His words uttered on earth [TRENCH]. An undesigned coincidence, proving that these epistles are, as they profess, in their words, as well as substance, Christ's own addresses; not even tinged with the color of John's style, such as it appears in his Gospel and Epistles. The coincidence is mainly with the three other Gospels, and not with John's, which makes the coincidence more markedly undesigned. So also the clause, "He that hath an ear, let him hear," is not repeated from John's Gospel, but from the Lord's own words in the three synoptic Gospels (Mat 11:15; Mat 13:9; Mar 4:9, Mar 4:23; Mar 7:16; Luk 8:8; Luk 14:35).

JFB: Rev 3:6 - -- (See on Rev 2:7.)

(See on Rev 2:7.)

JFB: Rev 3:7 - -- In Lydia, twenty-eight miles southeast of Sardis, built by Attalus Philadelphus, king of Pergamos, who died A.D. 138. It was nearly destroyed by an ea...

In Lydia, twenty-eight miles southeast of Sardis, built by Attalus Philadelphus, king of Pergamos, who died A.D. 138. It was nearly destroyed by an earthquake in the reign of Tiberius [TACITUS, Annals, 2.47]. The connection of this Church with Jews there causes the address to it to have an Old Testament coloring in the images employed. It and Smyrna alone of the seven receive unmixed praise.

JFB: Rev 3:7 - -- As in the Old Testament, "the Holy One of Israel." Thus Jesus and the God of the Old Testament are one. None but God is absolutely holy (Greek, "hagio...

As in the Old Testament, "the Holy One of Israel." Thus Jesus and the God of the Old Testament are one. None but God is absolutely holy (Greek, "hagios," separate from evil and perfectly hating it). In contrast to "the synagogue of Satan" (Rev 3:9).

JFB: Rev 3:7 - -- Greek, "alethinos": "VERY God," as distinguished from the false gods and from all those who say that they are what they are not (Rev 3:9): real, genui...

Greek, "alethinos": "VERY God," as distinguished from the false gods and from all those who say that they are what they are not (Rev 3:9): real, genuine. Furthermore, He perfectly realizes all that is involved in the names, GOD, Light (Joh 1:9; 1Jo 2:8), Bread (Joh 6:32), the Vine (Joh 15:1); as distinguished from all typical, partial, and imperfect realizations of the idea. His nature answers to His name (Joh 17:3; 1Th 1:9). The Greek, "alethes," on the other hand, is "truth-speaking," "truth-loving" (Joh 3:33; Tit 1:2).

JFB: Rev 3:7 - -- The antitype of Eliakim, to whom the "key," the emblem of authority "over the house of David," was transferred from Shebna, who was removed from the o...

The antitype of Eliakim, to whom the "key," the emblem of authority "over the house of David," was transferred from Shebna, who was removed from the office of chamberlain or treasurer, as unworthy of it. Christ, the Heir of the throne of David, shall supplant all the less worthy stewards who have abused their trust in God's spiritual house, and "shall reign over the house of Jacob," literal and spiritual (Luk 1:32-33), "for ever," "as a Son over His own house" (Heb 3:2-6). It rests with Christ to open or shut the heavenly palace, deciding who is, and who is not, to be admitted: as He also opens, or shuts, the prison, having the keys of hell (the grave) and death (Rev 1:18). The power of the keys was given to Peter and the other apostles, only when, and in so far as, Christ made him and them infallible. Whatever degrees of this power may have been committed to ministers, the supreme power belongs to Christ alone. Thus Peter rightly opened the Gospel door to the Gentiles (Acts 10:1-48; Act 11:17-18; especially Act 14:27, end). But he wrongly tried to shut the door in part again (Gal 2:11-18). Eliakim had "the key of the house of David laid upon his shoulder": Christ, as the antitypical David, Himself has the key of the supreme "government upon His shoulder." His attribute here, as in the former addresses, accords with His promise. Though "the synagogue of Satan," false "Jews" (Rev 3:9) try to "shut" the "door" which I "set open before thee"; "no man can shut it" (Rev 3:8).

JFB: Rev 3:7 - -- So Vulgate and Syriac Versions read. But the four oldest manuscripts read, "shall shut"; so Coptic Version and ORIGEN.

So Vulgate and Syriac Versions read. But the four oldest manuscripts read, "shall shut"; so Coptic Version and ORIGEN.

JFB: Rev 3:7 - -- Two oldest manuscripts, B, Aleph, Coptic Version, and ORIGEN read, "shall open." Two oldest manuscripts, A, C, and Vulgate Version support English Ver...

Two oldest manuscripts, B, Aleph, Coptic Version, and ORIGEN read, "shall open." Two oldest manuscripts, A, C, and Vulgate Version support English Version reading.

JFB: Rev 3:8 - -- Greek, "given": it is My gracious gift to thee.

Greek, "given": it is My gracious gift to thee.

JFB: Rev 3:8 - -- For evangelization; a door of spiritual usefulness. The opening of a door by Him to the Philadelphian Church accords with the previous assignation to ...

For evangelization; a door of spiritual usefulness. The opening of a door by Him to the Philadelphian Church accords with the previous assignation to Him of "the key of David."

JFB: Rev 3:8 - -- The three oldest manuscripts, A, B, C, and ORIGEN read, "which no man can shut."

The three oldest manuscripts, A, B, C, and ORIGEN read, "which no man can shut."

JFB: Rev 3:8 - -- "because."

"because."

JFB: Rev 3:8 - -- This gives the idea that Christ says, He sets before Philadelphia an open door because she has some little strength; whereas the sense rather is, He d...

This gives the idea that Christ says, He sets before Philadelphia an open door because she has some little strength; whereas the sense rather is, He does so because she has "but little strength": being consciously weak herself, she is the fitter object for God's power to rest on [so AQUINAS], that so the Lord Christ may have all the glory.

JFB: Rev 3:8 - -- And so, the littleness of thy strength becoming the source of Almighty power to thee, as leading thee to rest wholly on My great power, thou hast kept...

And so, the littleness of thy strength becoming the source of Almighty power to thee, as leading thee to rest wholly on My great power, thou hast kept My word. GROTIUS makes "little strength" to mean that she had a Church small in numbers and external resources: "a little flock poor in worldly goods, and of small account in the eyes of men" [TRENCH]. So ALFORD. I prefer the view given above. The Greek verbs are in the aorist tense: "Thou didst keep . . . didst not deny My name": alluding to some particular occasion when her faithfulness was put to the test.

JFB: Rev 3:9 - -- Greek present, "I make," literally, "I give" (see on Rev 3:8). The promise to Philadelphia is larger than that to Smyrna. To Smyrna the promise was th...

Greek present, "I make," literally, "I give" (see on Rev 3:8). The promise to Philadelphia is larger than that to Smyrna. To Smyrna the promise was that "the synagogue of Satan" should not prevail against the faithful in her: to Philadelphia, that she should even win over some of "the synagogue of Satan" to fall on their faces and confess God is in her of a truth. Translate, "(some) of the synagogue." For until Christ shall come, and all Israel then be saved, there is but "a remnant" being gathered out of the Jews "according to the election of grace." This is an instance of how Christ set before her an "open door," some of her greatest adversaries, the Jews, being brought to the obedience of the faith. Their worshipping before her feet expresses the convert's willingness to take the very lowest place in the Church, doing servile honor to those whom once they persecuted, rather than dwell with the ungodly. So the Philippian jailer before Paul.

JFB: Rev 3:10 - -- "endurance." "The word of My endurance" is My Gospel word, which teaches patient endurance in expectation of my coming (Rev 1:9). My endurance is the ...

"endurance." "The word of My endurance" is My Gospel word, which teaches patient endurance in expectation of my coming (Rev 1:9). My endurance is the endurance which I require, and which I practice. Christ Himself now endures, patiently waiting until the usurper be cast out, and all "His enemies be made His footstool." So, too, His Church, for the joy before her of sharing His coming kingdom, endures patiently. Hence, in Rev 3:11, follows, "Behold, I come quickly."

JFB: Rev 3:10 - -- The reward is in kind: "because thou didst keep," &c. "I also (on My side) will keep thee," &c.

The reward is in kind: "because thou didst keep," &c. "I also (on My side) will keep thee," &c.

JFB: Rev 3:10 - -- Greek, "(so as to deliver thee) out of," not to exempt from temptation.

Greek, "(so as to deliver thee) out of," not to exempt from temptation.

JFB: Rev 3:10 - -- The appointed season of affliction and temptation (so in Deu 4:34 the plagues are called "the temptations of Egypt"), literally, "the temptation": the...

The appointed season of affliction and temptation (so in Deu 4:34 the plagues are called "the temptations of Egypt"), literally, "the temptation": the sore temptation which is coming on: the time of great tribulation before Christ's second coming.

JFB: Rev 3:10 - -- Those who are of earth, earthy (Rev 8:13). "Dwell" implies that their home is earth, not heaven. All mankind, except the elect (Rev 13:8, Rev 13:14). ...

Those who are of earth, earthy (Rev 8:13). "Dwell" implies that their home is earth, not heaven. All mankind, except the elect (Rev 13:8, Rev 13:14). The temptation brings out the fidelity of those kept by Christ and hardens the unbelieving reprobates (Rev 9:20-21; Rev 16:11, Rev 16:21). The particular persecutions which befell Philadelphia shortly after, were the earnest of the great last tribulation before Christ's coming, to which the Church's attention in all ages is directed.

JFB: Rev 3:11 - -- Omitted by the three oldest manuscripts and most ancient versions.

Omitted by the three oldest manuscripts and most ancient versions.

JFB: Rev 3:11 - -- The great incentive to persevering faithfulness, and the consolation under present trials.

The great incentive to persevering faithfulness, and the consolation under present trials.

JFB: Rev 3:11 - -- "The word of my patience," or "endurance" (Rev 3:10), which He had just commended them for keeping, and which involved with it the attaining of the ki...

"The word of my patience," or "endurance" (Rev 3:10), which He had just commended them for keeping, and which involved with it the attaining of the kingdom; this they would lose if they yielded to the temptation of exchanging consistency and suffering for compromise and ease.

JFB: Rev 3:11 - -- Which otherwise thou wouldst receive: that no tempter cause thee to lose it: not that the tempter would thus secure it for himself (Col 2:18).

Which otherwise thou wouldst receive: that no tempter cause thee to lose it: not that the tempter would thus secure it for himself (Col 2:18).

JFB: Rev 3:12 - -- In one sense there shall be "no temple" in the heavenly city because there shall be no distinction of things into sacred and secular, for all things a...

In one sense there shall be "no temple" in the heavenly city because there shall be no distinction of things into sacred and secular, for all things and persons shall be holy to the Lord. The city shall be all one great temple, in which the saints shall be not merely stones, as m the spiritual temple now on earth, but all eminent as pillars: immovably firm (unlike Philadelphia, the city which was so often shaken by earthquakes, STRABO [12 and 13]), like the colossal pillars before Solomon's temple, Boaz (that is, "In it is strength") and Jachin ("It shall be established"): only that those pillars were outside, these shall be within the temple.

JFB: Rev 3:12 - -- (See on Rev 2:7).

(See on Rev 2:7).

JFB: Rev 3:12 - -- The Greek is stronger, never more at all. As the elect angels are beyond the possibility of falling, being now under (as the Schoolmen say) "the bless...

The Greek is stronger, never more at all. As the elect angels are beyond the possibility of falling, being now under (as the Schoolmen say) "the blessed necessity of goodness," so shall the saints be. The door shall be once for all shut, as well to shut safely in for ever the elect, as to shut out the lost (Mat 25:10; Joh 8:35; compare Isa 22:23, the type, Eliakim). They shall be priests for ever unto God (Rev 1:6). "Who would not yearn for that city out of which no friend departs, and into which no enemy enters?" [AUGUSTINE in TRENCH].

JFB: Rev 3:12 - -- As belonging to God in a peculiar sense (Rev 7:3; Rev 9:4; Rev 14:1; and especially Rev 22:4), therefore secure. As the name of Jehovah ("Holiness to ...

As belonging to God in a peculiar sense (Rev 7:3; Rev 9:4; Rev 14:1; and especially Rev 22:4), therefore secure. As the name of Jehovah ("Holiness to the Lord") was on the golden plate on the high priest's forehead (Exo 28:36-38); so the saints in their heavenly royal priesthood shall bear His name openly, as consecrated to Him. Compare the caricature of this in the brand on the forehead of the beast's followers (Rev 13:16-17), and on the harlot (Rev 17:5; compare Rev 20:4).

JFB: Rev 3:12 - -- As one of its citizens (Rev 21:2-3, Rev 21:10, which is briefly alluded to by anticipation here). The full description of the city forms the appropria...

As one of its citizens (Rev 21:2-3, Rev 21:10, which is briefly alluded to by anticipation here). The full description of the city forms the appropriate close of the book. The saint's citizenship is now hidden, but then it shall be manifested: he shall have the right to enter in through the gates into the city (Rev 22:14). This was the city which Abraham looked for.

JFB: Rev 3:12 - -- Greek, "kaine." Not the old Jerusalem, once called "the holy city," but having forfeited the name. Greek, "nea," would express that it had recently co...

Greek, "kaine." Not the old Jerusalem, once called "the holy city," but having forfeited the name. Greek, "nea," would express that it had recently come into existence; but Greek, "kaine," that which is new and different, superseding the worn-out old Jerusalem and its polity. "John, in the Gospel, applies to the old city the Greek name Hierosolyma. But in the Apocalypse, always, to the heavenly city the Hebrew name, Hierousalem. The Hebrew name is the original and holier one: the Greek, the recent and more secular and political one" [BENGEL].

JFB: Rev 3:12 - -- At present incommunicable and only known to God: to be hereafter revealed and made the believer's own in union with God in Christ. Christ's name writt...

At present incommunicable and only known to God: to be hereafter revealed and made the believer's own in union with God in Christ. Christ's name written on him denotes he shall be wholly Christ's. New also relates to Christ, who shall assume a new character (answering to His "new name") entering with His saints on a kingdom--not that which He had with the Father before the worlds, but that earned by His humiliation as Son of man. GIBBON, the infidel [Decline and Fall, ch. 64], gives an unwilling testimony to the fulfilment of the prophecy as to Philadelphia from a temporal point of view, Among the Greek colonies and churches of Asia, Philadelphia is still erect,--a column in a scene of ruins--a pleasing example that the paths of honor and safety may sometimes be the same."

JFB: Rev 3:13 - -- (See on Rev 2:7).

(See on Rev 2:7).

JFB: Rev 3:14 - -- The city was in the southwest of Phrygia, on the river Lycus, not far from Colosse, and lying between it and Philadelphia. It was destroyed by an eart...

The city was in the southwest of Phrygia, on the river Lycus, not far from Colosse, and lying between it and Philadelphia. It was destroyed by an earthquake, A.D. 62, and rebuilt by its wealthy citizens without the help of the state [TACITUS, Annals, 14.27]. This wealth (arising from the excellence of its wools) led to a self-satisfied, lukewarm state in spiritual things, as Rev 3:17 describes. See on Col 4:16, on the Epistle which is thought to have been written to the Laodicean Church by Paul. The Church in latter times was apparently flourishing; for one of the councils at which the canon of Scripture was determined was held in Laodicea in A.D. 361. Hardly a Christian is now to be found on or near its site.

JFB: Rev 3:14 - -- (Isa 65:16, Hebrew, "Bless Himself in the God of Amen . . . swear by the God of Amen," 2Co 1:20). He who not only says, but is, the Truth. The saints...

(Isa 65:16, Hebrew, "Bless Himself in the God of Amen . . . swear by the God of Amen," 2Co 1:20). He who not only says, but is, the Truth. The saints used Amen at the end of prayer, or in assenting to the word of God; but none, save the Son of God, ever said, "Amen, I say unto you," for it is the language peculiar to God, who avers by Himself. The New Testament formula, "Amen. I say unto you," is equivalent to the Old Testament formula, "as I live, saith Jehovah." In John's Gospel alone He uses (in the Greek) the double "Amen," Joh 1:51; Joh 3:3, &c.; in English Version," Verily, verily." The title happily harmonizes with the address. His unchanging faithfulness as "the Amen" contrasts with Laodicea's wavering of purpose, "neither hot nor cold" (Rev 3:16). The angel of Laodicea has with some probability been conjectured to be Archippus, to whom, thirty years previously, Paul had already given a monition, as needing to be stirred up to diligence in his ministry. So the Apostolic Constitutions, [8.46], name him as the first bishop of Laodicea: supposed to be the son of Philemon (Phm 1:2).

JFB: Rev 3:14 - -- As "the Amen" expresses the unchangeable truth of His promises; so "the faithful the true witness," the truth of His revelations as to the heavenly th...

As "the Amen" expresses the unchangeable truth of His promises; so "the faithful the true witness," the truth of His revelations as to the heavenly things which He has seen and testifies. "Faithful," that is, trustworthy (2Ti 2:11, 2Ti 2:13). "True" is here (Greek, "alethinos") not truth-speaking (Greek, "alethes"), but "perfectly realizing all that is comprehended in the name Witness" (1Ti 6:13). Three things are necessary for this: (1) to have seen with His own eyes what He attests; (2) to be competent to relate it for others; (3) to be willing truthfully to do so. In Christ all these conditions meet [TRENCH].

JFB: Rev 3:14 - -- Not he whom God created first, but as in Col 1:15-18 (see on Col 1:15-18), the Beginner of all creation, its originating instrument. All creation woul...

Not he whom God created first, but as in Col 1:15-18 (see on Col 1:15-18), the Beginner of all creation, its originating instrument. All creation would not be represented adoring Him, if He were but one of themselves. His being the Creator is a strong guarantee for His faithfulness as "the Witness and Amen."

JFB: Rev 3:15 - -- The antithesis to "hot," literally, "boiling" ("fervent," Act 18:25; Rom 12:11; compare Son 8:6; Luk 24:32), requires that "cold" should here mean mor...

The antithesis to "hot," literally, "boiling" ("fervent," Act 18:25; Rom 12:11; compare Son 8:6; Luk 24:32), requires that "cold" should here mean more than negatively cold; it is rather, positively icy cold: having never yet been warmed. The Laodiceans were in spiritual things cold comparatively, but not cold as the world outside, and as those who had never belonged to the Church. The lukewarm state, if it be the transitional stage to a warmer, is a desirable state (for a little religion, if real, is better than none); but most fatal when, as here, an abiding condition, for it is mistaken for a safe state (Rev 3:17). This accounts for Christ's desiring that they were cold rather than lukewarm. For then there would not be the same "danger of mixed motive and disregarded principle" [ALFORD]. Also, there is more hope of the "cold," that is, those who are of the world, and not yet warmed by the Gospel call; for, when called, they may become hot and fervent Christians: such did the once-cold publicans, Zaccheus and Matthew, become. But the lukewarm has been brought within reach of the holy fire, without being heated by it into fervor: having religion enough to lull the conscience in false security, but not religion enough to save the soul: as Demas, 2Ti 4:10. Such were the halters between two opinions in Israel (1Ki 18:21; compare 2Ki 17:41; Mat 6:24).

JFB: Rev 3:16 - -- So one oldest manuscript, B, and Vulgate read. But two oldest manuscripts, Syriac, and Coptic transpose thus, "hot nor cold." It is remarkable that th...

So one oldest manuscript, B, and Vulgate read. But two oldest manuscripts, Syriac, and Coptic transpose thus, "hot nor cold." It is remarkable that the Greek adjectives are in the masculine, agreeing with the angel, not feminine, agreeing with the Church. The Lord addresses the angel as the embodiment and representative of the Church. The chief minister is answerable for his flock if he have not faithfully warned the members of it.

JFB: Rev 3:16 - -- Greek, "I am about to," "I am ready to": I have it in my mind: implying graciously the possibility of the threat not being executed, if only they repe...

Greek, "I am about to," "I am ready to": I have it in my mind: implying graciously the possibility of the threat not being executed, if only they repent at once. His dealings towards them will depend on theirs towards Him.

JFB: Rev 3:16 - -- Reject with righteous loathing, as Canaan spued out its inhabitants for their abominations. Physicians used lukewarm water to cause vomiting. Cold and...

Reject with righteous loathing, as Canaan spued out its inhabitants for their abominations. Physicians used lukewarm water to cause vomiting. Cold and hot drinks were common at feasts, but never lukewarm. There were hot and cold springs near Laodicea.

JFB: Rev 3:17 - -- Self-sufficiency is the fatal danger of a lukewarm state (see on Rev 3:15).

Self-sufficiency is the fatal danger of a lukewarm state (see on Rev 3:15).

JFB: Rev 3:17 - -- Virtually and mentally, if not in so many words.

Virtually and mentally, if not in so many words.

JFB: Rev 3:17 - -- Greek, "have become enriched," implying self-praise in self-acquired riches. The Lord alludes to Hos 12:8. The riches on which they prided themselves ...

Greek, "have become enriched," implying self-praise in self-acquired riches. The Lord alludes to Hos 12:8. The riches on which they prided themselves were spiritual riches; though, doubtless, their spiritual self-sufficiency ("I have need of nothing") was much fostered by their worldly wealth; as, on the other hand, poverty of spirit is fostered by poverty in respect to worldly riches.

JFB: Rev 3:17 - -- In particular above all others. The "THOU" in the Greek is emphatic.

In particular above all others. The "THOU" in the Greek is emphatic.

JFB: Rev 3:17 - -- Greek, "art the wretched one."

Greek, "art the wretched one."

JFB: Rev 3:17 - -- So one oldest manuscripts reads. But two oldest manuscripts prefix "the." Translate, "the pitiable"; "the one especially to be pitied." How different ...

So one oldest manuscripts reads. But two oldest manuscripts prefix "the." Translate, "the pitiable"; "the one especially to be pitied." How different Christ's estimate of men, from their own estimate of themselves, "I have need of nothing!"

JFB: Rev 3:17 - -- Whereas Laodicea boasted of a deeper than common insight into divine things. They were not absolutely blind, else eye-salve would have been of no avai...

Whereas Laodicea boasted of a deeper than common insight into divine things. They were not absolutely blind, else eye-salve would have been of no avail to them; but short-sighted.

JFB: Rev 3:18 - -- Gentle and loving irony. Take My advice, thou who fanciest thyself in need of nothing. Not only art thou not in need of nothing, but art in need of th...

Gentle and loving irony. Take My advice, thou who fanciest thyself in need of nothing. Not only art thou not in need of nothing, but art in need of the commonest necessaries of existence. He graciously stoops to their modes of thought and speech: Thou art a people ready to listen to any counsel as to how to buy to advantage; then, listen to My counsel (for I am "Counsellor," Isa 9:6), buy of ME" (in whom, according to Paul's Epistle written to the neighboring Colosse and intended for the Laodicean Church also, Col 2:1, Col 2:3; Col 4:16, are hidden all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge). "Buy" does not imply that we can, by any work or merit of ours, purchase God's free gift; nay the very purchase money consists in the renunciation of all self-righteousness, such as Laodicea had (Rev 3:17). "Buy" at the cost of thine own self-sufficiency (so Paul, Phi 3:7-8); and the giving up of all things, however dear to us, that would prevent our receiving Christ's salvation as a free gift, for example, self and worldly desires. Compare Isa 55:1, "Buy . . . without money and price."

JFB: Rev 3:18 - -- The source of "unsearchable riches" (Eph 3:8). Laodicea was a city of extensive money transactions [CICERO].

The source of "unsearchable riches" (Eph 3:8). Laodicea was a city of extensive money transactions [CICERO].

JFB: Rev 3:18 - -- Literally, "fired (and fresh) from the fire," that is, just fresh from the furnace which has proved its purity, and retaining its bright gloss. Sterli...

Literally, "fired (and fresh) from the fire," that is, just fresh from the furnace which has proved its purity, and retaining its bright gloss. Sterling spiritual wealth, as contrasted with its counterfeit, in which Laodicea boasted itself. Having bought this gold she will be no longer poor (Rev 3:17).

JFB: Rev 3:18 - -- Greek, "mayest be enriched."

Greek, "mayest be enriched."

JFB: Rev 3:18 - -- "garments." Laodicea's wools were famous. Christ offers infinitely whiter raiment. As "gold tried in the fire" expresses faith tested by fiery trials:...

"garments." Laodicea's wools were famous. Christ offers infinitely whiter raiment. As "gold tried in the fire" expresses faith tested by fiery trials: so "white raiment," Christ's righteousness imputed to the believer in justification and imparted in sanctification.

JFB: Rev 3:18 - -- Greek, "be manifested," namely, at the last day, when everyone without the wedding garment shall be discovered. To strip one, is in the East the image...

Greek, "be manifested," namely, at the last day, when everyone without the wedding garment shall be discovered. To strip one, is in the East the image of putting to open shame. So also to clothe one with fine apparel is the image of doing him honor. Man can discover his shame, God alone can cover it, so that his nakedness shall not be manifested at last (Col 3:10-14). Blessed is he whose sin is so covered. The hypocrite's shame may be manifested now; it must be so at last.

JFB: Rev 3:18 - -- The oldest manuscripts read, "(buy of Me) eye-salve (collyrium, a roll of ointment), to anoint thine eyes." Christ has for Laodicea an ointment far mo...

The oldest manuscripts read, "(buy of Me) eye-salve (collyrium, a roll of ointment), to anoint thine eyes." Christ has for Laodicea an ointment far more precious than all the costly unguents of the East. The eye is here the conscience or inner light of the mind. According as it is sound and "single" (Greek, "haplous," "simple"), or otherwise, the man sees aright spiritually, or does not. The Holy Spirit's unction, like the ancient eye-salve's, first smarts with conviction of sin, then heals. He opens our eyes first to ourselves in our wretchedness, then to the Saviour in His preciousness. TRENCH notices that the most sunken churches of the seven, namely, Sardis and Laodicea, are the ones in which alone are specified no opponents from without, nor heresies from within. The Church owes much to God's overruling Providence which has made so often internal and external foes, in spite of themselves, to promote His cause by calling forth her energies in contending for the faith once delivered to the saints. Peace is dearly bought at the cost of spiritual stagnation, where there is not interest enough felt in religion to contend about it at all.

JFB: Rev 3:19 - -- (Job 5:17; Pro 3:11-12; Heb 12:5-6.) So in the case of Manasseh (2Ch 33:11-13).

(Job 5:17; Pro 3:11-12; Heb 12:5-6.) So in the case of Manasseh (2Ch 33:11-13).

JFB: Rev 3:19 - -- All. "He scourgeth every son whom He receiveth. And shalt thou be an exception? If excepted from suffering the scourge, thou art excepted from the num...

All. "He scourgeth every son whom He receiveth. And shalt thou be an exception? If excepted from suffering the scourge, thou art excepted from the number of the sons" [AUGUSTINE]. This is an encouragement to Laodicea not to despair, but to regard the rebuke as a token for good, if she profit by it.

JFB: Rev 3:19 - -- Greek, "philo," the love of gratuitous affection, independent of any grounds for esteem in the object loved. But in the case of Philadelphia (Rev 3:9)...

Greek, "philo," the love of gratuitous affection, independent of any grounds for esteem in the object loved. But in the case of Philadelphia (Rev 3:9), "I have loved thee" (Greek, "egapesa") with the love of esteem, founded on the judgment. Compare the note in my English Gnomon of BENGEL, Joh 21:15-17.

JFB: Rev 3:19 - -- The "I" in the Greek stands first in the sentence emphatically. I in My dealings, so altogether unlike man's, in the case of all whom I love, rebuke. ...

The "I" in the Greek stands first in the sentence emphatically. I in My dealings, so altogether unlike man's, in the case of all whom I love, rebuke. The Greek, "elencho," is the same verb as in Joh 16:8, "(the Holy Ghost) will convince (rebuke unto conviction) the world of sin."

JFB: Rev 3:19 - -- "chastise." The Greek, "paideu," which in classical Greek means to instruct, in the New Testament means to instruct by chastisement (Heb 12:5-6). Davi...

"chastise." The Greek, "paideu," which in classical Greek means to instruct, in the New Testament means to instruct by chastisement (Heb 12:5-6). David was rebuked unto conviction, when he cried, "I have sinned against the Lord"; the chastening followed when his child was taken from him (2Sa 12:13-14). In the divine chastening, the sinner at one and the same time winces under the rod and learns righteousness.

JFB: Rev 3:19 - -- Habitually. Present tense in the Greek, of a lifelong course of zeal. The opposite of "lukewarm." The Greek by alliteration marks this: Laodicea had n...

Habitually. Present tense in the Greek, of a lifelong course of zeal. The opposite of "lukewarm." The Greek by alliteration marks this: Laodicea had not been "hot" (Greek, "zestos"), she is therefore urged to "be zealous" (Greek, "zeleue"): both are derived from the same verb, Greek, "zeo," "to boil."

JFB: Rev 3:19 - -- Greek aorist: of an act to be once for all done, and done at once.

Greek aorist: of an act to be once for all done, and done at once.

JFB: Rev 3:20 - -- Waiting in wonderful condescension and long-suffering.

Waiting in wonderful condescension and long-suffering.

JFB: Rev 3:20 - -- (Son 5:2). This is a further manifestation of His loving desire for the sinner's salvation. He who is Himself "the Door," and who bids us "knock" tha...

(Son 5:2). This is a further manifestation of His loving desire for the sinner's salvation. He who is Himself "the Door," and who bids us "knock" that it may be "opened unto" us, is first Himself to knock at the door of our hearts. If He did not knock first, we should never come to knock at His door. Compare Son 5:4-6, which is plainly alluded to here; the Spirit thus in Revelation sealing the canonicity of that mystical book. The spiritual state of the bride there, between waking and sleeping, slow to open the door to her divine lover, answers to that of the lukewarm Laodicea here. "Love in regard to men emptied (humbled) God; for He does not remain in His place and call to Himself the servant whom He loved, but He comes down Himself to seek him, and He who is all-rich arrives at the lodging of the pauper, and with His own voice intimates His yearning love, and seeks a similar return, and withdraws not when disowned, and is not impatient at insult, and when persecuted still waits at the doors" [NICOLAUS CABASILAS in TRENCH].

JFB: Rev 3:20 - -- He appeals to the sinner not only with His hand (His providences) knocking, but with His voice (His word read or heard; or rather, His Spirit inwardly...

He appeals to the sinner not only with His hand (His providences) knocking, but with His voice (His word read or heard; or rather, His Spirit inwardly applying to man's spirit the lessons to be drawn from His providence and His word). If we refuse to answer to His knocking at our door now, He will refuse to hear our knocking at His door hereafter. In respect to His second coming also, He is even now at the door, and we know not how soon He may knock: therefore we should always be ready to open to Him immediately.

JFB: Rev 3:20 - -- For man is not compelled by irresistible force: Christ knocks, but does not break open the door, though the violent take heaven by the force of prayer...

For man is not compelled by irresistible force: Christ knocks, but does not break open the door, though the violent take heaven by the force of prayer (Mat 11:12): whosoever does hear, does so not of himself, but by the drawings of God's grace (Joh 6:44): repentance is Christ's gift (Act 5:31). He draws, not drags. The Sun of righteousness, like the natural sun, the moment that the door is opened, pours in His light, which could not previously find an entrance. Compare HILARY on Psa 118:19.

JFB: Rev 3:20 - -- As I did to Zaccheus.

As I did to Zaccheus.

JFB: Rev 3:20 - -- Delightful reciprocity! Compare "dwelleth in me, and I in Him," Joh 6:56. Whereas, ordinarily, the admitted guest sups with the admitter, here the div...

Delightful reciprocity! Compare "dwelleth in me, and I in Him," Joh 6:56. Whereas, ordinarily, the admitted guest sups with the admitter, here the divine guest becomes Himself the host, for He is the bread of life, and the Giver of the marriage feast. Here again He alludes to the imagery of Son 4:16, where the Bride invites Him to eat pleasant fruits, even as He had first prepared a feast for her, "His fruit was sweet to my taste." Compare the same interchange, Joh 21:9-13, the feast being made up of the viands that Jesus brought, and those which the disciples brought. The consummation of this blessed intercommunion shall be at the Marriage Supper of the Lamb, of which the Lord's Supper is the earnest and foretaste.

JFB: Rev 3:21 - -- (Rev 2:26-27; Rev 20:6; Mat 19:28; Mat 20:23; Joh 17:22, Joh 17:24; 2Ti 2:12). The same whom Christ had just before threatened to spue out of His mou...

(Rev 2:26-27; Rev 20:6; Mat 19:28; Mat 20:23; Joh 17:22, Joh 17:24; 2Ti 2:12). The same whom Christ had just before threatened to spue out of His mouth, is now offered a seat with Him on His throne! "The highest place is within reach of the lowest; the faintest spark of grace may be fanned into the mightiest flame of love" [TRENCH].

JFB: Rev 3:21 - -- Two thrones are here mentioned: (1) His Father's, upon which He now sits, and has sat since His ascension, after His victory over death, sin, the worl...

Two thrones are here mentioned: (1) His Father's, upon which He now sits, and has sat since His ascension, after His victory over death, sin, the world; upon this none can sit save God, and the God-man Christ Jesus, for it is the incommunicable prerogative of God alone; (2) the throne which shall be peculiarly His as the once humbled and then glorified Son of man, to be set up over the whole earth (heretofore usurped by Satan) at His coming again; in this the victorious saints shall share (1Co 6:2). The transfigured elect Church shall with Christ judge and reign over the nations in the flesh, and Israel the foremost of them; ministering blessings to them as angels were the Lord's mediators of blessing and administrators of His government in setting up His throne in Israel at Sinai. This privilege of our high calling belongs exclusively to the present time while Satan reigns, when alone there is scope for conflict and for victory (2Ti 2:11-12). When Satan shall be bound (Rev 20:4), there shall be no longer scope for it, for all on earth shall know the Lord from the least to the greatest. This, the grandest and crowning promise, is placed at the end of all the seven addresses, to gather all in one. It also forms the link to the next part of the book, where the Lamb is introduced seated on His Father's throne (Rev 4:2-3; Rev 5:5-6). The Eastern throne is broad, admitting others besides him who, as chief, occupies the center. TRENCH notices; The order of the promises in the seven epistles corresponds to that of the unfolding of the kingdom of God its first beginnings on earth to its consummation in heaven. To the faithful at Ephesus: (1) The tree of life in the Paradise of God is promised (Rev 2:7), answering to Gen 2:9. (2) Sin entered the world and death by sin; but to the faithful at Smyrna it is promised, they shall not be hurt by the second death (Rev 2:11). (3) The promise of the hidden manna (Rev 2:17) to Pergamos brings us to the Mosaic period, the Church in the wilderness. (4) That to Thyatira, namely, triumph over the nations (Rev 2:26-27), forms the consummation of the kingdom in prophetic type, the period of David and Solomon characterized by this power of the nations. Here there is a division, the seven falling into two groups, four and three, as often, for example, the Lord's Prayer, three and four. The scenery of the last three passes from earth to heaven, the Church contemplated as triumphant, with its steps from glory to glory. (5) Christ promises to the believer of Sardis not to blot his name out of the book of life but to confess him before His Father and the angels at the judgment-day, and clothe him with a glorified body of dazzling whiteness (Rev 3:4-5). (6) To the faithful at Philadelphia Christ promises they shall be citizens of the new Jerusalem, fixed as immovable pillars there, where city and temple are one (Rev 3:12); here not only individual salvation is promised to the believer, as in the case of Sardis, but also privileges in the blessed communion of the Church triumphant. (7) Lastly, to the faithful of Laodicea is given the crowning promise, not only the two former blessings, but a seat with Christ on His throne, even as He has sat with His Father on His Father's throne (Rev 3:21).

Clarke: Rev 3:3 - -- Remember - Enter into a serious consideration of your state

Remember - Enter into a serious consideration of your state

Clarke: Rev 3:3 - -- How thou hast received - With what joy, zeal, and gladness ye heard the Gospel of Christ when first preached to you

How thou hast received - With what joy, zeal, and gladness ye heard the Gospel of Christ when first preached to you

Clarke: Rev 3:3 - -- Hold fast - Those good desires and heavenly influences which still remain

Hold fast - Those good desires and heavenly influences which still remain

Clarke: Rev 3:3 - -- And repent - Be humbled before God, because ye have not been workers together with him, but have received much of his grace in vain

And repent - Be humbled before God, because ye have not been workers together with him, but have received much of his grace in vain

Clarke: Rev 3:3 - -- If therefore thou shalt not watch - If you do not consider your ways, watching against sin, and for opportunities to receive and do good

If therefore thou shalt not watch - If you do not consider your ways, watching against sin, and for opportunities to receive and do good

Clarke: Rev 3:3 - -- I will come on thee as a thief - As the thief comes when he is not expected, so will I come upon you if ye be not watchful, and cut you off from lif...

I will come on thee as a thief - As the thief comes when he is not expected, so will I come upon you if ye be not watchful, and cut you off from life and hope.

Clarke: Rev 3:4 - -- Thou hast a few names even in Sardis - A few persons, names being put for those who bore them. And as the members of the Church were all enrolled, o...

Thou hast a few names even in Sardis - A few persons, names being put for those who bore them. And as the members of the Church were all enrolled, or their names entered in a book, when admitted into the Church or when baptized, names are here put for the people themselves. See Rev 3:5

Clarke: Rev 3:4 - -- Have not defiled their garments - Their souls. The Hebrews considered holiness as the garb of the soul, and evil actions as stains or spots on this ...

Have not defiled their garments - Their souls. The Hebrews considered holiness as the garb of the soul, and evil actions as stains or spots on this garb. So in Shabbath, fol. 152, 2: "A certain king gave royal garments to his servants: those who were prudent folded them up, and laid them by in a chest; those who were foolish put them on, and performed their daily labor in them. After some time the king asked for those royal robes; the wise brought theirs white and clean, the foolish brought theirs spotted with dirt. With the former the king was well pleased; with the latter he was angry. Concerning the former he said: Let those garments be laid up in my wardrobe, and let the persons go home in peace. Of the latter he said: Let the garments be put into the hands of the fuller, and cast those who wore them into prison."This parable is spoken on these words of Ecclesiastes, Ecc 12:7 : The spirit shall return to God who gave it

Clarke: Rev 3:4 - -- They shall walk with me in white - They shall be raised to a state of eternal glory, and shall be for ever with their Lord.

They shall walk with me in white - They shall be raised to a state of eternal glory, and shall be for ever with their Lord.

Clarke: Rev 3:5 - -- I will not blot out his name - This may be an allusion to the custom of registering the names of those who were admitted into the Church in a book k...

I will not blot out his name - This may be an allusion to the custom of registering the names of those who were admitted into the Church in a book kept for that purpose, from which custom our baptismal registers in Churches are derived. These are properly books of life, as there those who were born unto God were registered; as in the latter those who were born in that parish were enrolled. Or there may be allusions to the white raiment worn by the priests, and the erasing of the name of any priest out of the sacerdotal list who had either sinned, or was found not to be of the seed of Aaron. In Middoth, fol. 37, 2: "The great council of Israel sat and judged the priests. If in a priest any vice was found they stripped of his white garments and clothed him in black, in which he wrapped himself, went out, and departed. Him in whom no vice was found they clothed in white, and he went and took his part in the ministry among his brother priests.

Clarke: Rev 3:5 - -- I will confess his name - I will acknowledge that this person is my true disciple, and a member of my mystical body. In all this there may also be a...

I will confess his name - I will acknowledge that this person is my true disciple, and a member of my mystical body. In all this there may also be an allusion to the custom of registering citizens. Their names were entered into books, according to their condition, tribes, family, etc.; and when they were dead, or had by unconstitutional acts forfeited their right of citizenship, the name was blotted out, or erased from the registers. See the note on Exo 32:32.

Clarke: Rev 3:6 - -- He that hath an ear - The usual caution and counsel carefully to attend to the things spoken to the members of that Church, in which every reader is...

He that hath an ear - The usual caution and counsel carefully to attend to the things spoken to the members of that Church, in which every reader is more or less interested

Epistle to the Church at Philadelphia

Clarke: Rev 3:7 - -- He that is holy - In whom holiness essentially dwells, and from whom all holiness is derived

He that is holy - In whom holiness essentially dwells, and from whom all holiness is derived

Clarke: Rev 3:7 - -- He that is true - He who is the fountain of truth; who cannot lie nor be imposed on; from whom all truth proceeds; and whose veracity in his Revelat...

He that is true - He who is the fountain of truth; who cannot lie nor be imposed on; from whom all truth proceeds; and whose veracity in his Revelation is unimpeachable

Clarke: Rev 3:7 - -- He that hath the key of David - See this metaphor explained, Mat 16:19. Key is the emblem of authority and knowledge; the key of David is the regal ...

He that hath the key of David - See this metaphor explained, Mat 16:19. Key is the emblem of authority and knowledge; the key of David is the regal right or authority of David. David could shut or open the kingdom of Israel to whom he pleased. He was not bound to leave the kingdom even to his eldest son. He could choose whom he pleased to succeed him. The kingdom of the Gospel, and the kingdom of heaven, are at the disposal of Christ. He can shut against whom he will; he can open to whom he pleases. If he shuts, no man can open; if he opens, no man can shut. His determinations all stand fast, and none can reverse them. This expression is an allusion to Isa 22:22, where the prophet promises to Eliakim, under the symbol of the key of the house of David, the government of the whole nation; i.e., all the power of the king, to be executed by him as his deputy; but the words, as here applied to Christ, show that He is absolute.

Clarke: Rev 3:8 - -- I have set before thee an open door - I have opened to thee a door to proclaim and diffuse my word; and, notwithstanding there are many adversaries ...

I have set before thee an open door - I have opened to thee a door to proclaim and diffuse my word; and, notwithstanding there are many adversaries to the spread of my Gospel, yet none of them shall be able to prevent it

Clarke: Rev 3:8 - -- Thou hast a little strength - Very little political authority or influence; yet thou hast kept my word - hast kept the true doctrine; and hast not d...

Thou hast a little strength - Very little political authority or influence; yet thou hast kept my word - hast kept the true doctrine; and hast not denied my name, by taking shelter in heathenism when Christianity was persecuted. The little strength may refer either to the smallness of the numbers, or to the littleness of their grace.

Clarke: Rev 3:9 - -- I will make them - Show them to be, of the synagogue of Satan, who say they are Jews, pretending thereby to be of the synagogue of God, and conseque...

I will make them - Show them to be, of the synagogue of Satan, who say they are Jews, pretending thereby to be of the synagogue of God, and consequently his true and peculiar children

Clarke: Rev 3:9 - -- I will make them to come and worship - I will so dispose of matters in the course of my providence, that the Jews shall be obliged to seek unto the ...

I will make them to come and worship - I will so dispose of matters in the course of my providence, that the Jews shall be obliged to seek unto the Christians for toleration, support, and protection, which they shall be obliged to sue for in the most humble and abject manner

Clarke: Rev 3:9 - -- To know that I have loved thee - That the love which was formerly fixed on the Jews is now removed, and transferred to the Gentiles.

To know that I have loved thee - That the love which was formerly fixed on the Jews is now removed, and transferred to the Gentiles.

Clarke: Rev 3:10 - -- The word of my patience - The doctrine which has exposed you to so much trouble and persecution, and required so much patience and magnanimity to be...

The word of my patience - The doctrine which has exposed you to so much trouble and persecution, and required so much patience and magnanimity to bear up under its attendant trials

Clarke: Rev 3:10 - -- The hour of temptation - A time of sore and peculiar trial which might have proved too much for their strength. He who is faithful to the grace of G...

The hour of temptation - A time of sore and peculiar trial which might have proved too much for their strength. He who is faithful to the grace of God is often hidden from trials and difficulties which fall without mitigation on those who have been unfaithful in his covenant. Many understand by the hour of temptation the persecution under Trajan, which was greater and more extensive than the preceding ones under Nero and Domitian

Clarke: Rev 3:10 - -- To try them - That is, such persecutions will be the means of trying and proving those who profess Christianity, and showing who were sound and thor...

To try them - That is, such persecutions will be the means of trying and proving those who profess Christianity, and showing who were sound and thorough Christians and who were not.

Clarke: Rev 3:11 - -- Behold, I come quickly - These things will shortly take place; and I am coming with consolations and rewards to my faithful followers, and with judg...

Behold, I come quickly - These things will shortly take place; and I am coming with consolations and rewards to my faithful followers, and with judgments to my adversaries

Clarke: Rev 3:11 - -- Take thy crown - God has provided mansions for you; let none through your fall occupy those seats of blessedness.

Take thy crown - God has provided mansions for you; let none through your fall occupy those seats of blessedness.

Clarke: Rev 3:12 - -- A pillar in the temple - There is probably all allusion here to the two pillars in the temple of Jerusalem, called Jachin and Boaz, stability and st...

A pillar in the temple - There is probably all allusion here to the two pillars in the temple of Jerusalem, called Jachin and Boaz, stability and strength. The Church is the temple; Christ is the foundation on which it is built; and his ministers are the Pillars by which, under him, it is adorned and supported. St. Paul has the same allusions, Gal 2:9

Clarke: Rev 3:12 - -- I will write upon him the name of my God - That is, I will make him a priest unto myself. The priest had written on his forehead קודש ליהו×...

I will write upon him the name of my God - That is, I will make him a priest unto myself. The priest had written on his forehead קודש ליהוה kodesh laihovah , "Holiness to the Lord.

Clarke: Rev 3:12 - -- And the name of the city of my God - As the high priest had on his breastplate the names of the twelve tribes engraved, and these constituted the ci...

And the name of the city of my God - As the high priest had on his breastplate the names of the twelve tribes engraved, and these constituted the city or Church of God; Christ here promises that in place of them the twelve apostles, representing the Christian Church, shall be written, which is called the New Jerusalem, and which God has adopted in place of the twelve Jewish tribes

Clarke: Rev 3:12 - -- My new name - The Savior of All; the light that lightens the Gentiles; the Christ; the Anointed One; the only Governor of his Church; and the Redeem...

My new name - The Savior of All; the light that lightens the Gentiles; the Christ; the Anointed One; the only Governor of his Church; and the Redeemer of All mankind

There is here an intimation that the Christian Church is to endure for ever; and the Christian ministry to last as long as time endures: He shall go no more out for ever

Epistle to the Church of the Laodiceans

Clarke: Rev 3:14 - -- These things saith the Amen - That is, He who is true or faithful; from ×מן aman , he was tree; immediately interpreted, The faithful and true w...

These things saith the Amen - That is, He who is true or faithful; from ×מן aman , he was tree; immediately interpreted, The faithful and true witness. See Rev 1:5

Clarke: Rev 3:14 - -- The beginning of the creation of God - That is, the head and governor of all creatures: the king of the creation. See on Col 1:15 (note). By his tit...

The beginning of the creation of God - That is, the head and governor of all creatures: the king of the creation. See on Col 1:15 (note). By his titles, here, he prepares them for the humiliating and awful truths which he was about to declare, and the authority on which the declaration was founded.

Clarke: Rev 3:15 - -- Thou art neither cold nor hot - Ye are neither heathens nor Christians - neither good nor evil - neither led away by false doctrine, nor thoroughly ...

Thou art neither cold nor hot - Ye are neither heathens nor Christians - neither good nor evil - neither led away by false doctrine, nor thoroughly addicted to that which is true. In a word, they were listless and indifferent, and seemed to care little whether heathenism or Christianity prevailed. Though they felt little zeal either for the salvation of their own souls or that of others, yet they had such a general conviction of the truth and importance of Christianity, that they could not readily give it up

Clarke: Rev 3:15 - -- I would thou wert cold or hot - That is, ye should be decided; adopt some part or other, and be in earnest in your attachment to it. If ever the wor...

I would thou wert cold or hot - That is, ye should be decided; adopt some part or other, and be in earnest in your attachment to it. If ever the words of Mr. Erskine, in his Gospel Sonnets, were true, they were true of this Church: -

"To good and evil equal bent

I’ m both a devil and a saint.

They were too good to go to hell, too bad to go to heaven. Like Ephraim and Judah, Hos 6:4 : O Ephraim, what shall I do unto thee? O Judah, what shall I do unto thee? for your goodness is as a morning cloud, and as the early dew it passeth away. They had good dispositions which were captivated by evil ones, and they had evil dispositions which in their turn yielded to those that were good; and the Divine justice and mercy seem puzzled to know what to do to or with them. This was the state of the Laodicean Church; and our Lord expresses here in this apparent wish, the same that is expressed by Epictetus, Ench., chap. 36. Ἑνα σε δει ανθÏωπον, η αγαθον, η κακον, ειναι . "Thou oughtest to be one kind of man, either a good man or a bad man."

Clarke: Rev 3:16 - -- Because thou art lukewarm - Irresolute and undecided

Because thou art lukewarm - Irresolute and undecided

Clarke: Rev 3:16 - -- I will spue thee out of my mouth - He alludes here to the known effect of tepid water upon the stomach; it generally produces a nausea. I wilt cast ...

I will spue thee out of my mouth - He alludes here to the known effect of tepid water upon the stomach; it generally produces a nausea. I wilt cast thee off. Thou shalt have no interest in me. Though thou hast been near to my heart, yet now I must pluck thee thence, because slothful, careless, and indolent; thou art not in earnest for thy soul.

Clarke: Rev 3:17 - -- I am rich - Thou supposest thyself to be in a safe state, perfectly sure of final salvation, because thou hast begun well, and laid the right founda...

I am rich - Thou supposest thyself to be in a safe state, perfectly sure of final salvation, because thou hast begun well, and laid the right foundation. It was this most deceitful conviction that cut the nerves of their spiritual diligence; they rested in what they had already received, and seemed to think that once in grace must be still in grace

Clarke: Rev 3:17 - -- Thou art wretched - ΤαλαιπωÏος· Most wretched. "The word signifies,"according to Mintert, "being worn out and fatigued with grievous la...

Thou art wretched - ΤαλαιπωÏος· Most wretched. "The word signifies,"according to Mintert, "being worn out and fatigued with grievous labors, as they who labor in a stone quarry, or are condemned to the mines."So, instead of being children of God, as they supposed, and infallible heirs of the kingdom, they were, in the sight of God, in the condition of the most abject slaves

Clarke: Rev 3:17 - -- And miserable - Ὁ ελεεινος· Most deplorable, to be pitied by all men

And miserable - Ὁ ελεεινος· Most deplorable, to be pitied by all men

Clarke: Rev 3:17 - -- And poor - Having no spiritual riches, no holiness of heart. Rich and poor are sometimes used by the rabbins to express the righteous and the wicked

And poor - Having no spiritual riches, no holiness of heart. Rich and poor are sometimes used by the rabbins to express the righteous and the wicked

Clarke: Rev 3:17 - -- And blind - The eyes of thy understanding being darkened, so that thou dost not see thy state

And blind - The eyes of thy understanding being darkened, so that thou dost not see thy state

Clarke: Rev 3:17 - -- And naked - Without the image of God, not clothed with holiness and purity. A more deplorable state in spiritual things can scarcely be imagined tha...

And naked - Without the image of God, not clothed with holiness and purity. A more deplorable state in spiritual things can scarcely be imagined than that of this Church. And it is the true picture of many Churches, and of innumerable individuals.

Clarke: Rev 3:18 - -- I counsel thee - O fallen and deceived soul, hear Jesus! Thy case is not hopeless. Buy of me

I counsel thee - O fallen and deceived soul, hear Jesus! Thy case is not hopeless. Buy of me

Clarke: Rev 3:18 - -- Gold tried in the fire - Come and receive from me, without money and without price, faith that shall stand in every trial: so gold tried in the fire...

Gold tried in the fire - Come and receive from me, without money and without price, faith that shall stand in every trial: so gold tried in the fire is here understood. But it may mean pure and undefiled religion, or that grace or Divine influence which produces it, which is more valuable to the soul than the purest gold to the body. They had before imaginary riches; this alone can make them truly rich

Clarke: Rev 3:18 - -- White raiment - Holiness of heart and life

White raiment - Holiness of heart and life

Clarke: Rev 3:18 - -- Anoint thine eyes - Pray for, that ye may receive, the enlightening influences of my Spirit, that ye may be convinced of your true state, and see wh...

Anoint thine eyes - Pray for, that ye may receive, the enlightening influences of my Spirit, that ye may be convinced of your true state, and see where your help lies.

Clarke: Rev 3:19 - -- As many as I love - So it was the love he still had to them that induced him thus to reprehend and thus to counsel them

As many as I love - So it was the love he still had to them that induced him thus to reprehend and thus to counsel them

Clarke: Rev 3:19 - -- Be zealous - Be in earnest, to get your souls saved, They had no zeal; this was their bane. He now stirs them up to diligence in the use of the mean...

Be zealous - Be in earnest, to get your souls saved, They had no zeal; this was their bane. He now stirs them up to diligence in the use of the means of grace and repentance for their past sins and remissness.

Clarke: Rev 3:20 - -- Behold, I stand at the door and knock - There are many sayings of this kind among the ancient rabbins; thus in Shir Hashirim Rabba, fol. 25, 1: "God...

Behold, I stand at the door and knock - There are many sayings of this kind among the ancient rabbins; thus in Shir Hashirim Rabba, fol. 25, 1: "God said to the Israelites, My children, open to me one door of repentance, even so wide as the eye of a needle, and I will open to you doors through which calves and horned cattle may pass.

In Sohar Levit, fol. 8, col. 32, it is said: "If a man conceal his sin, and do not open it before the holy King, although he ask mercy, yet the door of repentance shall not be opened to him. But if he open it before the holy blessed God, God spares him, and mercy prevails over wrath; and when he laments, although all the doors were shut, yet they shall be opened to him, and his prayer shall be heard.

Christ stands - waits long, at the door of the sinner’ s heart; he knocks - uses judgments, mercies, reproofs, exhortations, etc., to induce sinners to repent and turn to him; he lifts up his voice - calls loudly by his word, ministers, and Spirit

Clarke: Rev 3:20 - -- If any man hear - If the sinner will seriously consider his state, and attend to the voice of his Lord

If any man hear - If the sinner will seriously consider his state, and attend to the voice of his Lord

Clarke: Rev 3:20 - -- And open the door - This must be his own act, receiving power for this purpose from his offended Lord, who will not break open the door; he will mak...

And open the door - This must be his own act, receiving power for this purpose from his offended Lord, who will not break open the door; he will make no forcible entry

Clarke: Rev 3:20 - -- I will come in to him - I will manifest myself to him, heal all his backslidings, pardon all his iniquities, and love him freely

I will come in to him - I will manifest myself to him, heal all his backslidings, pardon all his iniquities, and love him freely

Clarke: Rev 3:20 - -- Will sup with him - Hold communion with him, feed him with the bread of life

Will sup with him - Hold communion with him, feed him with the bread of life

Clarke: Rev 3:20 - -- And he with me - I will bring him at last to dwell with me in everlasting glory.

And he with me - I will bring him at last to dwell with me in everlasting glory.

Clarke: Rev 3:21 - -- To sit with me in my throne - In every case it is to him that overcometh, to the conqueror, that the final promise is made. He that conquers not is ...

To sit with me in my throne - In every case it is to him that overcometh, to the conqueror, that the final promise is made. He that conquers not is not crowned, therefore every promise is here made to him that is faithful unto death. Here is a most remarkable expression: Jesus has conquered, and is set down with the Father upon the Father’ s throne; he who conquers through Christ sits down with Christ upon his throne: but Christ’ s throne and the throne of the Father is the same; and it is on this same throne that those who are faithful unto death are finally to sit! How astonishing is this state of exaltation! The dignity and grandeur of it who can conceive

This is the worst of the seven Churches, and yet the most eminent of all the promises are made to it, showing that the worst may repent, finally conquer, and attain even to the highest state of glory.

Clarke: Rev 3:22 - -- He that hath an ear, let him hear - Mr. Wesley has a very judicious note on the conclusion of this chapter, and particularly on this last verse, He ...

He that hath an ear, let him hear - Mr. Wesley has a very judicious note on the conclusion of this chapter, and particularly on this last verse, He that hath an ear, etc. "This (counsel) stands in three former letters before the promise, in the four latter after it; clearly dividing the seven into two parts, the first containing three, the last four letters. The titles given our Lord in the three former letters peculiarly respect his power after his resurrection and ascension, particularly over his Church; those in the four latter, his Divine glory and unity with the Father and the Holy Spirit. Again, this word being placed before the promises in the three former letters excludes the false apostles at Ephesus, the false Jews at Smyrna, and the partakers with the heathens at Pergamos, from having any share therein. In the four latter, being placed after them, it leaves the promises immediately joined with Christ’ s address to the angel of the Church, to show that the fulfilling of these was near; whereas the others reach beyond the end of the world. It should be observed that the overcoming or victory (to which alone these peculiar promises are annexed) is not the ordinary victory obtained by every believer, but a special victory obtained over great and peculiar temptations, by those that are strong in faith.

The latest account we have of the state of the seven Asiatic Churches is in a letter from the Rev. Henry Lindsay, chaplain to the British embassy at Constantinople, to a member of the British and Foreign Bible Society, by which society Mr. Lindsay had been solicited to distribute some copies of the New Testament in modern Greek among the Christians in Asia Minor

The following is his communication, dated: - "Constantinople, January 10, 1816

"When I last wrote to you, I was on the point of setting out on a short excursion into Asia Minor. Travelling hastily, as I was constrained to do from the circumstances of my situation, the information I could procure was necessarily superficial and unsatisfactory. As, however, I distributed the few books of the society which I was able to carry with me, I think it necessary to give some account of the course I took

"1.    The regular intercourse of England with Smyrna will enable you to procure as accurate intelligence of its present state as any I can pretend to offer. From the conversations I had with the Greek bishop and his clergy, as well as various well-informed individuals, I am led to suppose that, if the population of Smyrna be estimated at one hundred and forty thousand inhabitants, there are from fifteen to twenty thousand Greeks, six thousand Armenians, five thousand Catholics, one hundred and forty Protestants, and eleven thousand Jews

"2.    After Smyrna, the first place I visited was Ephesus, or rather (as the site is not quite the same) Aiasalick, which consists of about fifteen poor cottages. I found there but three Christians, two brothers who keep a small shop, and a gardener. They are all three Greeks, and their ignorance is lamentable indeed. In that place, which was blessed so long with an apostle’ s labors, and those of his zealous assistants are Christians who have not so much as heard of that apostle, or seem only to recognize the name of Paul as one in the calendar of their saints. One of them I found able to read a little, and left with him the New Testament, in ancient and modern Greek, which he expressed a strong desire to read, and promised me he would not only study it himself, but lend it to his friends in the neighboring villages

"3.    My next object was to see Laodicea; in the road to this is Guzel-hisar, a large town, with one church, and about seven hundred Christians. In conversing with the priests here, I found them so little acquainted with the Bible, or even the New Testament in an entire form, that they had no distinct knowledge of the books it contained beyond the four gospels, but mentioned them indiscriminately with various idle legends and lives of saints. I have sent thither three copies of the modern Greek Testament since my return. About three miles from Laodicea is Denizli, which has been styled (but I am inclined to think erroneously) the ancient Colosse; it is a considerable town, with about four hundred Christians, Greeks, and Armenians, each of whom has a church. I regret however to say that here also the most extravagant tales of miracles, and fabulous accounts of angels, saints, and relics, had so usurped the place of the Scriptures as to render it very difficult to separate in their minds Divine truths from human inventions. I felt that here that unhappy time was come when men should ‘ turn away their ears from the truth, and be turned unto fables.’ I had with me some copies of the gospels in ancient Greek which I distributed here, as in some other places through which I had passed. Eski-hisar, close to which are the remains of ancient Laodicea, contains about fifty poor inhabitants, in which number are but two Christians, who live together in a small mill; unhappily neither could read at all; the copy therefore of the New Testament, which I intended for this Church, I left with that of Denizli, the offspring and poor remains of Laodicea and Colosse. The prayers of the mosque are the only prayers which are heard near the ruins of Laodicea, on which the threat seems to have been fully executed in its utter rejection as a Church

"4.    I left it for Philadelphia, now Alah-shehr. It was gratifying to find at last some surviving fruits of early zeal; and here, at least, whatever may be the loss of the spirit of Christianity, there is still the form of a Christian Church; this has been kept from the ‘ hour of temptation,’ which came upon all the Christian world. There are here about one thousand Christians, chiefly Greeks, who for the most part speak only Turkish; there are twenty-five places of public worship, five of which are large regular churches; to these there is a resident bishop, with twenty inferior clergy. A copy of the modern Greek Testament was received by the bishop with great thankfulness

"5.    I quitted Alah-shehr, deeply disappointed at the statement I received there of the Church of Sardis. I trusted that in its utmost trials it would not have been suffered to perish utterly, and I heard with surprise that not a vestige of it remained. With what satisfaction then did I find on the plains of Sardis a small Church establishment; the few Christians who dwell around modern Sart were anxious to settle there and erect a church, as they were in the habit of meeting at each other’ s houses for the exercise of religion. From this design they were prohibited by Kar Osman Oglu, the Turkish governor of the district; and in consequence, about five years ago they built a church upon the plain, within view of ancient Sardis, and there they maintain a priest. The place has gradually risen into a little village, now called Tatar-keny; thither the few Christians of Sart, who amount to seven, and those in its immediate vicinity, resort for public worship, and form together a congregation of about forty. There appears then still a remnant, ‘ a few names even in Sardis,’ which have been preserved. I cannot repeat the expressions of gratitude with which they received a copy of the New Testament in a language with which they were familiar. Several crowded about the priest to hear it on the spot, and I left them thus engaged

"6.    Ak-hisar, the ancient Thyatira, is said to contain about thirty thousand inhabitants, of whom three thousand are Christians, all Greeks except about two hundred Armenians. There is, however, but one Greek church and one Armenian. The superior of the Greek Church to whom I presented the Romaic Testament esteemed it so great a treasure that he earnestly pressed me, if possible, to spare another, that one might be secured to the Church and free from accidents, while the other went round among the people for their private reading. I have, therefore, since my return hither, sent him four copies

"7.    The Church of Pergamos, in respect to numbers, may be said to flourish still in Bergamo. The town is less than Ak-hisar, but the number of Christians is about as great, the proportion of Armenians to Greeks nearly the same, and each nation also has one church. The bishop of the district, who occasionally resides there, was at that time absent, and I experienced with deep regret that the resident clergy were totally incapable of estimating the gift I intended them; I therefore delivered the Testament to the lay vicar of the bishop at his urgent request, he having assured me that the bishop would highly prize so valuable an acquisition to the Church. He seemed much pleased that the benighted state of his nation had excited the attention of strangers

"Thus, sir, I have left at least one copy of the unadulterated word of God at each of the seven Asiatic Churches of the Apocalypse, and I trust they are not utterly thrown away; but whoever may plant, it is God only who can give the increase, and from his goodness we may hope they will in due time bring forth fruit, ‘ some thirty, some sixty, and some a hundred fold.’ "Henry Lindsay.

In my note on Act 19:24 (note), I have given an account of the celebrated temple of Diana at Ephesus, to which building, called one of the seven wonders of the world, St. Paul is supposed to allude in his epistle to this Church, particularly at Eph 3:18 (note), where I have again given the measurement of this temple.

Defender: Rev 3:3 - -- Every believer, in every age of church history, should be watching for the coming of the Lord (Mar 13:37), for "the day of the Lord so cometh as a thi...

Every believer, in every age of church history, should be watching for the coming of the Lord (Mar 13:37), for "the day of the Lord so cometh as a thief in the night" (1Th 5:2). Each of the last four of the seven epistles has a reference to the imminent return of Christ."

Defender: Rev 3:5 - -- All whose names are not in the book of life will be cast into the lake of fire (Rev 20:15), and all who reject the words of Scripture will have their ...

All whose names are not in the book of life will be cast into the lake of fire (Rev 20:15), and all who reject the words of Scripture will have their names blotted out (see note on Rev 22:19). On the other hand, those who overcome will never compromise their faith in Christ, even at the risk of their lives (Rev 13:8). It seems probable that all who enter the world have their names in the Lamb's book of life and are safe in Him until they reach an age of accountability and become conscious sinners. At that point they are spiritually dead and need salvation, but their names are not actually blotted out of the book of life until they have irrevocably rejected Christ."

Defender: Rev 3:7 - -- Philadelphia means "brotherly love," and was named by King Attalus of Pergamos, its founder, in honor of his brother. Philadelphia still survives as t...

Philadelphia means "brotherly love," and was named by King Attalus of Pergamos, its founder, in honor of his brother. Philadelphia still survives as the modern town Alashehir, located about twenty-eight miles southeast of Sardis.

Defender: Rev 3:7 - -- The Lord here claims to have "the key of David," referring to Isa 22:22 : "And the key of the house of David will I lay upon his shoulder; so he shall...

The Lord here claims to have "the key of David," referring to Isa 22:22 : "And the key of the house of David will I lay upon his shoulder; so he shall open, and none shall shut; and he shall shut, and none shall open." In Isaiah's context, this promise was made to Eliakim, a servant of King Hezekiah. The "key" was the key to the national treasury and figuratively to the control of the government. Eliakim thus was a type of the Messiah; Christ here asserts in effect that He controls the governmental economy of the whole world and all that happens therein."

Defender: Rev 3:8 - -- Literally, "a little strength" simply reads "little strength" since the article is not present in the Greek. The Lord's promise of a continuing open d...

Literally, "a little strength" simply reads "little strength" since the article is not present in the Greek. The Lord's promise of a continuing open door, therefore, is conditioned on the premise that the church (or any Christian ministry, for that matter) have little strength of its own, and thus relies wholly on the strength of the Lord. Worldly marketing methods may seem to yield large numerical results for a time but will also produce gradual spiritual compromise and eventual disintegration.

In addition to the "little strength" criterion, the church or other ministry must keep ("guard") the absolute integrity of God's Word and uphold the name of the Lord Jesus Christ."

Defender: Rev 3:9 - -- See note on Rev 2:9.

See note on Rev 2:9.

Defender: Rev 3:9 - -- These Jews who were of the synagogue of Satan would not worship the Philadelphia believers themselves (not even angels will accept such worship - Rev ...

These Jews who were of the synagogue of Satan would not worship the Philadelphia believers themselves (not even angels will accept such worship - Rev 22:8, Rev 22:9); but in the presence of these believers, they will bow down to the Lord they had rejected on earth (Phi 2:10)."

Defender: Rev 3:10 - -- This "hour of temptation" was yet to "come upon all the world," so this statement could not have referred to any of the events of the first century. I...

This "hour of temptation" was yet to "come upon all the world," so this statement could not have referred to any of the events of the first century. Its purpose will be "to try them that dwell upon the earth." It is a time of judgment on unbelievers, not on believers. This testing will be "the great day of his wrath" (Rev 6:17), the seven-year period of tribulation at the end of the age (Dan 9:27; Mat 24:15-21). God has promised to deliver all true believers from this testing, for "God hath not appointed us to wrath, but to obtain salvation by our Lord Jesus Christ" (1Th 5:9; see also 1Th 4:16, 1Th 4:17 and notes on 2Th 2:3)."

Defender: Rev 3:11 - -- Even though they have "little strength" (Rev 3:8), there will indeed be Philadelphia-type churches bearing their testimony on earth when the Lord come...

Even though they have "little strength" (Rev 3:8), there will indeed be Philadelphia-type churches bearing their testimony on earth when the Lord comes."

Defender: Rev 3:14 - -- Laodicea was near Colosse (Col 4:16), about forty-five miles southeast of Philadelphia and almost one hundred miles east of Ephesus. It was a wealthy ...

Laodicea was near Colosse (Col 4:16), about forty-five miles southeast of Philadelphia and almost one hundred miles east of Ephesus. It was a wealthy city, with its wealth shared by the Christians in the church there. Instead of having "little strength," as at Philadelphia, its members boasted of their riches (Rev 3:17).

Defender: Rev 3:14 - -- The Laodicean church was not an apostate church, for its candlestick had not been removed, but it was a neutral church, agreeing with the Scriptures a...

The Laodicean church was not an apostate church, for its candlestick had not been removed, but it was a neutral church, agreeing with the Scriptures and Christian doctrine in general, but so enamored of its worldly eminence that it would not stand firmly on such controversial doctrines as true creationism, full Biblical inerrancy, perspicuity and authority. It was "lukewarm" (Rev 3:16). Thus the Lord introduced Himself as "the faithful and true witness," whose Word therefore must be inviolable. He is the one who had created the universe itself, "the beginning of the creation of God," allowing no doctrinal position that could accommodate the pagan evolutionism. Furthermore, He is the "Amen" as well as the Creator, the Omega as well as the Alpha, so they should have been looking toward His imminent coming, rather than trying to impress the world."

Defender: Rev 3:16 - -- Note that Christ would prefer not only a hot church like Philadelphia but also a cold church like Sardis to a lukewarm, neutral, accommodationist, com...

Note that Christ would prefer not only a hot church like Philadelphia but also a cold church like Sardis to a lukewarm, neutral, accommodationist, comfortable church like Laodicea. At least Sardis was not harming anyone because it was not influencing anyone."

Defender: Rev 3:17 - -- There are multitudes of large and affluent churches today that are evangelical and nominally Biblical. They have become so comfortable with evolutioni...

There are multitudes of large and affluent churches today that are evangelical and nominally Biblical. They have become so comfortable with evolutionism and modern life styles that they are spiritually impoverished, filled with half-converted babes in Christ who are easy prey for the world, the flesh and the devil. The Lord is calling them to repentance (Rev 3:19), for they are still His churches, and therefore He must rebuke and chasten them."

Defender: Rev 3:20 - -- When we see the signs of His imminent coming all around us, including many neutralist Laodicean-type churches, we know that He is at the door, soon to...

When we see the signs of His imminent coming all around us, including many neutralist Laodicean-type churches, we know that He is at the door, soon to sit down with all His saints at the great marriage supper of the Lamb (compare Mat 24:33; Rev 19:9).

Defender: Rev 3:20 - -- Although it is often used as such, this verse is not a gospel verse, appealing to the unsaved to accept Christ. It does not contain gospel essentials ...

Although it is often used as such, this verse is not a gospel verse, appealing to the unsaved to accept Christ. It does not contain gospel essentials such as reporting Christ's sacrificial death for sinners or discussing believing on Him for salvation. It is addressed directly to the neutralist, self-satisfied Laodicean church, calling them to repentance. In context then, the Lord is calling worldly, compromising believers to allow Him back into their lives."

Defender: Rev 3:21 - -- Here is a marvelous testimony to God's grace. Those whom the Lord had just threatened to "spue"(Rev 3:16) out of His mouth, He now invites to share Hi...

Here is a marvelous testimony to God's grace. Those whom the Lord had just threatened to "spue"(Rev 3:16) out of His mouth, He now invites to share His throne."

Defender: Rev 3:22 - -- This is the last reference to churches in Revelation until the very last chapter (Rev 22:16). This fact strongly reinforces the inference that Revelat...

This is the last reference to churches in Revelation until the very last chapter (Rev 22:16). This fact strongly reinforces the inference that Revelation 2 and 3 reflect the entire church age, with the rest of the book dealing with the period after all true churches have been raptured and taken to be with the Lord."

TSK: Rev 3:3 - -- Remember : Rev 2:5; Eze 16:61-63, Eze 20:43, Eze 36:31; Heb 2:1; 2Pe 1:13, 2Pe 3:1 and hold : Rev 3:11, Rev 2:25; 1Ti 6:20; 2Ti 1:13 repent : Rev 3:19...

TSK: Rev 3:4 - -- names : Rev 11:13 *Gr: Act 1:15 even : 1Ki 19:18; Isa 1:9; Rom 11:4-6 which : Rev 7:14, Rev 19:8; Isa 52:1, Isa 59:6, Isa 61:3, Isa 61:10, Isa 64:6; Z...

TSK: Rev 3:5 - -- that : Rev 2:7; 1Sa 17:25 the same : Rev 3:4, Rev 19:8 blot : Exo 32:32, Exo 32:33; Deu 9:14; Psa 69:28, Psa 109:13 the book : Rev 13:8, Rev 17:8, Rev...

TSK: Rev 3:6 - -- Rev 2:7

TSK: Rev 3:7 - -- to the : Rev 1:11, Rev 2:1 Philadelphia : Philadelphia, so called for its founder, Attalus Philadelphus, still exists in the town called Allahshehr, "...

to the : Rev 1:11, Rev 2:1

Philadelphia : Philadelphia, so called for its founder, Attalus Philadelphus, still exists in the town called Allahshehr, ""the city of God,""""a column in a scene of ruins.""It is situated on the slopes of three or four hills, the roots of mount Tmolus, by the river Cogamus, twenty seven miles ese from Sardis, about long. 28 degrees 40 minutes, lat. 38 degrees 23 minutes. The number of houses is said to be about 3,000, of which 250 are Greek, the rest Turkish; and the Christians have twenty-five places of worship, five of them large and regular churches, a resident bishop, and twenty inferior clergy.

he that is holy : Rev 4:8, Rev 6:10; Psa 16:10, Psa 89:18, Psa 145:17; Isa 6:3, Isa 30:11, Isa 41:14, Isa 41:16, Isa 41:20, Isa 47:4; Isa 48:17, Isa 49:7, Isa 54:5, Isa 55:5; Mar 1:24; Luk 4:34; Act 3:14

he that is true : Rev 3:14, Rev 1:5, Rev 6:10, Rev 15:3, Rev 16:7, Rev 19:2, Rev 19:11, Rev 21:5; Mat 24:35; Joh 14:6; 1Jo 5:20

the key : Rev 1:18; Isa 22:22; Luk 1:32

he that openeth : Rev 5:3-5, Rev 5:9; Job 11:10, Job 12:14; Mat 16:19

TSK: Rev 3:8 - -- I know : Rev 3:1, Rev 3:15, Rev 2:2 an open : Rev 3:7; 1Co 16:9; 2Co 2:12; Col 4:3 a little : Dan 11:34; 2Co 12:8-10; Phi 4:13 and hast kept : Rev 3:1...

TSK: Rev 3:9 - -- the synagogue : Rev 2:9 I will make them to : Exo 11:8, Exo 12:30-32; 1Sa 2:36; Est 8:17; Job 42:8-10; Isa 49:23, Isa 60:14; Zec 8:20-23; Act 16:37-39

TSK: Rev 3:10 - -- the word : Rev 1:9, Rev 13:10, Rev 14:12 I also : Mat 6:13, Mat 26:41; 1Co 10:13; Eph 6:13; 2Pe 2:9 all : Mat 24:14; Mar 14:9; Luk 2:1; Rom 1:8 to try...

TSK: Rev 3:11 - -- I come : Rev 1:3, Rev 22:7, Rev 22:12, Rev 22:20; Zep 1:14; Phi 4:5; Jam 5:9 hold : Rev 3:3, Rev 2:13, Rev 2:25 thy : Rev 2:10, Rev 4:4, Rev 4:10; 1Co...

TSK: Rev 3:12 - -- overcometh : Rev 2:7, Rev 17:14; 1Jo 2:13, 1Jo 2:14, 1Jo 4:4 pillar : 1Ki 7:21; Jer 1:18; Gal 2:9 I will : Rev 2:17, Rev 14:1, Rev 22:4 the city : Rev...

TSK: Rev 3:13 - -- Rev 2:7

TSK: Rev 3:14 - -- the angel : Rev 1:11, Rev 2:1 of the Laodiceans : or, in Laodicea, Col 2:1, Col 4:16 the Amen : Isa 65:16; 2Co 1:20 the faithful : Rev 3:7, Rev 1:5, R...

the angel : Rev 1:11, Rev 2:1

of the Laodiceans : or, in Laodicea, Col 2:1, Col 4:16

the Amen : Isa 65:16; 2Co 1:20

the faithful : Rev 3:7, Rev 1:5, Rev 19:11, Rev 22:6; Isa 55:4; Jer 42:5

the beginning : Col 1:15

TSK: Rev 3:15 - -- I know : Rev 3:1, Rev 2:2 that : Rev 2:4; Mat 24:12; Phi 1:9; 2Th 1:3; 1Pe 1:22 I would : Deu 5:29; Psa 81:11-13; 2Co 12:20 thou : Jos 24:15-24; 1Ki 1...

TSK: Rev 3:16 - -- I will spue thee out : Rev 2:5; Jer 14:19, Jer 15:1-4; Zec 11:8, Zec 11:9

I will spue thee out : Rev 2:5; Jer 14:19, Jer 15:1-4; Zec 11:8, Zec 11:9

TSK: Rev 3:17 - -- I am : Rev 2:9; Pro 13:7; Hos 12:8; Zec 11:5; Luk 1:53, Luk 6:24, Luk 18:11, Luk 18:12; Rom 11:20,Rom 11:25; Rom 12:3; 1Co 4:8-10 have need : Deu 8:12...

TSK: Rev 3:18 - -- counsel : Psa 16:7, Psa 32:8, Psa 73:24, Psa 107:11; Pro 1:25, Pro 1:30, Pro 19:20; Ecc 8:2 buy : Pro 23:23; Isa 55:1; Mat 13:44, Mat 25:9 gold : Mal ...

TSK: Rev 3:19 - -- many : Deu 8:5; 2Sa 7:14; Job 5:17; Psa 6:1, Psa 39:11, Psa 94:10; Pro 3:11, Pro 3:12, Pro 15:10; Pro 15:32, Pro 22:15; Isa 26:16; Jer 2:30, Jer 7:28,...

TSK: Rev 3:20 - -- I stand : Son 5:2-4; Luk 12:36 I will : Joh 14:21-23 will sup : Rev 19:9; Luk 12:37, Luk 17:8

I stand : Son 5:2-4; Luk 12:36

I will : Joh 14:21-23

will sup : Rev 19:9; Luk 12:37, Luk 17:8

TSK: Rev 3:21 - -- him : Rev 2:7, Rev 12:11; 1Jo 5:4, 1Jo 5:5 to sit : Rev 1:6, Rev 2:26, Rev 2:27; Mat 19:28; Luk 22:30; 1Co 6:2, 1Co 6:3; 2Ti 2:12 even : Joh 16:33 and...

TSK: Rev 3:22 - -- Rev 3:6, Rev 3:13, Rev 2:7, Rev 2:11, Rev 2:17

collapse all
Commentary -- Word/Phrase Notes (per Verse)

Barnes: Rev 3:3 - -- Remember therefore how thou hast received - This may refer either to some uniqueness in the manner in which the gospel was conveyed to them - a...

Remember therefore how thou hast received - This may refer either to some uniqueness in the manner in which the gospel was conveyed to them - as, By the labors of the apostles, and by the remarkable effusions of the Holy Spirit; or to the ardor and love with which they embraced it; or to the greatness of the favors and privileges conferred on them; or to their own understanding of what the gospel required, when they were converted. It is not possible to determined in which sense the language is used; but the general idea is plain, that there was something marked and unusual in the way in which they had been led to embrace the gospel, and that it was highly proper in these circumstances to look back to the days when they gave themselves to Christ. It is always well for Christians to call to remembrance the "day of their espousals,"and their views and feelings when they gave their hearts to the Saviour, and to compare those views with their present condition, especially if their conversion was marked by anything unusual.

And heard - How thou didst hear the gospel in former times; that is, with what earnestness and attention thou didst embrace it. This would rather seem to imply that the reference in the whole passage is to the fact that they embraced the gospel with great ardor and zeal.

And hold fast -

(1)    Hold fast the truths which thou didst then receive;

(2)\caps1     h\caps0 old fast what remains of true religion among you.

And repent - Repent in regard to all that in which you have departed from your views and feelings when you embraced the gospel.

If therefore thou shalt not watch - The speaker evidently supposed that it was possible that they would not regard the warning; that they would presume that they would be safe if they refused to give heed to it, or, that by mere inattention and indifference they might suffer the warning to pass by unheeded. Similar results have been so common in the world as to make such a supposition not improbable, and to make proper, in other cases as well as that, the solemn threatening that he would come suddenly upon them.

I will come on thee as a thief - In a sudden and unexpected manner. See the notes on 1Th 5:2.

And ye shall not know what hour I will come upon thee - You shall not know beforehand; you shall have no warning of my immediate approach. This is often the way in which God comes to people in his heavy judgments. Long beforehand, he admonishes us, indeed, of what must be the consequences of a course of sin, and warns us to turn from it; but when sinners refuse to attend to his warning, and still walk in the way of evil, he comes suddenly, and cuts them down. Every man who is warned of the evil of his course, and who refuses or neglects to repent, has reason to believe that God will come suddenly in his wrath, and call him to his bar, Pro 29:1. No such man can presume on impunity; no one who is warned of his guilt and danger can feel that he is for one moment safe. No one can have any basis of calculation that he will be spared; no one can flatter himself with any probable anticipation that he will have time to repent when God comes to take him away. Benevolence has done its appropriate work in warning him - how can the Great Judge of all be to blame, if he comes then, and suddenly cuts the sinner off?

Barnes: Rev 3:4 - -- Thou hast a few names even in Sardis - See the analysis of the chapter. The word "names"here is equivalent to "persons"; and the idea is, that ...

Thou hast a few names even in Sardis - See the analysis of the chapter. The word "names"here is equivalent to "persons"; and the idea is, that even in a place so depraved, and where religion had so much declined, there were a few persons who had kept themselves free from the general contamination. In most cases, when error and sin prevail, there may be found a few who are worthy of the divine commendation; a few who show that true religion may exist even when the mass are evil. Compare the notes on Rom 11:4.

Which have not defiled their garments - Compare the notes on Jud 1:23. The meaning is, that they had not defiled themselves by coming in contact with the profane and the polluted; or, in other words, they had kept themselves free from the prevailing corruption. They were like persons clothed in white walking in the midst of the defiled, yet keeping their raiment from being soiled.

And they shall walk with me in white - White is the emblem of innocence, and is hence appropriately represented as the color of the raiment of the heavenly inhabitants. The persons here referred to had kept their garments uncontaminated on the earth, and as an appropriate reward it is said that they would appear in white raiment in heaven. Compare Rev 7:9; Rev 19:8.

For they are worthy - They have shown themselves worthy to be regarded as followers of the Lamb; or, they have a character that is suited for heaven. The declaration is not that they have any claim to heaven on the ground of their own merit, or that it will be in virtue of their own works that they will be received there; but that there is a fitness or propriety that they should thus appear in heaven. We are all personally unworthy to be admitted to heaven, but we may evince such a character as to show that, according to the arrangements of grace, it is fit and proper that we should be received there. We have the character to which God has promised eternal life.

Barnes: Rev 3:5 - -- He that overcometh - See the notes on Rev 2:7. The same shall be clothed in white raiment - Whosoever he may be that shall overcome sin a...

He that overcometh - See the notes on Rev 2:7.

The same shall be clothed in white raiment - Whosoever he may be that shall overcome sin and the temptations of this world, shall be admitted to this glorious reward. The promise is made not only to those in Sardis who should be victorious, but to all in every age and every land. The hope that is thus held out before us, is that of appearing with the Redeemer in his kingdom, clad in robes expressive of holiness and joy.

And I will not blot out his name out of the book of life - The book which contains the names of those who are to live with him forever. The names of his people are thus represented as enrolled in a book which he keeps - a register of those who are to live forever. The phrase "book of life"frequently occurs in the Bible, representing this idea. See the notes on Phi 4:3. Compare Rev 15:3; Rev 20:12, Rev 20:15; Rev 21:27; Rev 22:19. The expression "I will not blot out"means, that the names would be found there on the great day of final account, and would be found there forever. It may be remarked, that as no one can have access to that book but he who keeps it, there is the most positive assurance that it will never be done, and the salvation of the redeemed will be, therefore, secure. And let it be remembered that the period is coming when it will be felt to be a higher honor to have the name enrolled in that book than in the books of heraldry - in the most splendid catalogue of princes, poets, warriors, nobles, or statesmen that the world has produced.

But I will confess his name, ... - I will acknowledge him to be my follower. See the notes on Mat 10:32.

Barnes: Rev 3:6 - -- He that hath an ear ... - See the notes on Rev 2:7. The Epistle to the Church in Philadelphia This epistle Rev 3:7-13 comprises the foll...

He that hath an ear ... - See the notes on Rev 2:7.

The Epistle to the Church in Philadelphia

This epistle Rev 3:7-13 comprises the following subjects:

(1)    The usual address to the angel of the church, Rev 3:7.

(2)\caps1     t\caps0 he reference to some attribute or characteristic of the speaker, Rev 3:7. He here addresses the church as one who is holy and true; as he who has the key of David, and who can shut and no one can open, and open and no one can shut. The representation is that of one who occupies a royal palace, and who can admit or exclude anyone whom he pleases. The reference to such a palace is continued through the epistle.

(3)\caps1     t\caps0 he usual declaration that he knows their works, and that he has found that they had strength, though but a little, and had kept his word, Rev 3:8.

(4)\caps1     a\caps0 declaration that he would constrain some who professed that they were Jews, but who were of the synagogue of Satan, to come and humble themselves before them, Rev 3:9.

(5)\caps1     t\caps0 he particular promise to that church. He would keep them in the hour of temptation that was coming to try all that dwelt upon the earth, Rev 3:10.

(6)\caps1     t\caps0 he command addressed to them as to the other churches. He solemnly enjoins it on them to see that no one should take their crown, or deprive them of the reward which he would give to his faithful followers, Rev 3:11.

(7)\caps1     a\caps0 general promise, in view of the circumstances in Philadelphia, to all who should overcome, Rev 3:12. They would be made a pillar in the temple of God, and go no more out. They would have written on themselves the name of his God, and the name of the holy city - showing that they were inhabitants of the heavenly world.

(8)\caps1     t\caps0 he usual call on all to attend to what was said to the churches, Rev 3:13.

Philadelphia stood about 25 miles south-cast from Sardis, in the plain of Hermus, and about midway between the river of that name and the termination of Mount Tmolus. It was the second city in Lydia, and was built by King Attalus Philadelphus, from whom it received its name. In the year 133 b.c. the place passed, with the country in the vicinity, under the dominion of the Romans. The site is reported by Strabo to be liable to earthquakes, but it continued to be a place of importance down to the Byzantine age; and, of all the towns in Asia Minor, it withstood the Turks the longest. It was taken by Bajazat, 1392 a.d. "It still exists as a Turkish town, under the name of Allah Shehr, ‘ City of God,’ that is, the ‘ High Town.’ It covers a considerable extent of ground, running up the slopes of four hills, or rather of one hill with four flat summits. The country, as viewed from these hills, is extremely magnificent - gardens and vineyards lying at the back and sides of the town, and before it one of the most beautiful and extensive plains of Asia. The missionaries Fisk and Parsons were informed by the Greek bishop that the town contained 3,000 houses, of which he assigned 250 to the Greeks, and the rest to the Turks (the mid-19th century). On the same authority it is stated that there are five churches in the town, besides twenty others which were too old or too small for use. Six minarets, indicating as many mosques, are seen in the town, and one of these mosques is believed by the native Christians to have been the church in which assembled the primitive Christians addressed in the Apocalypse. There are few ruins; but in one part are four pillars, which are supposed to have been columns of a church.

One solitary pillar has been often noticed, as reminding beholders of the remarkable words in the Apocalypse - ‘ Him that overcometh I will make a pillar in the temple of my God’ "(Kitto’ s Encyclopedia . See also the Missionary Herald for 1821, p. 253; 1839, pp. 210-212). The town is the seat of a Greek archbishop, with about twenty inferior clergy. The streets are narrow, and are described as remarkably filthy. The engraving in this volume will give a representation of the town as it now appears.

Barnes: Rev 3:7 - -- And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia - See the notes on Rev 1:20. These things saith he that is holy - This refers undoubtedly ...

And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia - See the notes on Rev 1:20.

These things saith he that is holy - This refers undoubtedly to the Lord Jesus. The appellation holy, or the holy one, is one that befits him, and is not infrequently given to him in the New Testament, Luk 1:35; Act 2:27; Act 3:14. It is not only an appellation appropriate to the Saviour, but well adapted to be employed when he is addressing the churches. Our impression of what is said to us will often depend much on our idea of the character of him who addresses us, and solemnity and thoughtfulness always become us when we are addressed by a holy Redeemer.

He that is true - Another characteristic of the Saviour well suited to be referred to when he addresses people. It is a characteristic often ascribed to him in the New Testament (Joh 1:9, Joh 1:14, Joh 1:17; Joh 8:40, Joh 8:45; Joh 14:6; Joh 18:37; 1Jo 5:20), and one which is eminently adapted to impress the mind with solemn thought in view of the fact that he is to pronounce on our character, and to determine our destiny.

He that hath the key of David - This expression is manifestly taken from Isa 22:22, "And the key of the house of David will I lay upon his shoulder."See the passage explained in the notes on that place. As used by Isaiah, the phrase is applied to Eliakim; and it is not to be inferred, because the language here is applied to the Lord Jesus, that originally it had any such reference. "The application of the same terms,"says Prof. Alexander on Isa 22:22, "to Peter Mat 16:19, and to Christ himself Rev 3:7, does not prove that they here refer to either, or that Eliakim was a type of Christ, but merely that the same words admit of different applications."The language is what properly denotes authority or control - as when one has the key of a house, and has unlimited access to it; and the meaning here is, that as David is represented as the king of Israel residing in a palace, so he who had the key to that palace had regal authority.

He that openeth, and no man shutteth, ... - He has free and unrestrained access to the house; the power of admitting anyone, or of excluding anyone. Applied here to the Saviour, as king in Zion, this means that in his kingdom he has the absolute control in regard to tire admission or exclusion of anyone. He can prescribe the terms; he can invite whom he chooses; he can exclude those whom he judges should not be admitted. A reference to this absolute control was every way proper when he was addressing a church, and is every way proper for us to reflect on when we think of the subject of our personal salvation.

Barnes: Rev 3:8 - -- I know thy works - See the notes on Rev 2:2. Behold, I have set before thee an open door - Referring to his authority as stated in Rev 3:...

I know thy works - See the notes on Rev 2:2.

Behold, I have set before thee an open door - Referring to his authority as stated in Rev 3:7. The "open door"here evidently refers to the enjoyment of some privilege or honor; and, so far as the language is concerned, it may refer to any one of the following things - either:

(1)\caps1     t\caps0 he ability to do good - represented as the "opening of the door."Compare Act 14:27; 1Co 16:9; 2Co 2:12; Col 4:3.

(2)\caps1     t\caps0 he privilege of access to the heavenly palace; that is, that they had an abundant opportunity of securing their salvation, the door being never closed against them by day or by night. Compare Rev 21:25. Or.

(3)\caps1     i\caps0 t may mean that they had before them an open way of egress from danger and persecution.

This latter Prof. Stuart supposes to be the true meaning; and argues this because it is immediately specified that those Jewish persecutors would be made to humble themselves, and that the church would but lightly experience the troubles which were coming upon the world around them. But the more natural interpretation of the phrase "an open door"is that it refers to access to a thing rather than egress from a thing; that we may come to what we desire to approach, rather than escape from what we dread. There is no objection, it seems to me, to the supposition that the language may be used here in the largest sense - as denoting that, in regard to the church at Philadelphia, there was no restraint. He had given them the most unlimited privileges. The temple of salvation was thrown open to them; the celestial city was accessible; the whole world was before them as a field of usefulness, and anywhere, and everywhere, they might do good, and at all times they might have access to the kingdom of God.

And no man can shut it - No one has the power of preventing this, for he who has control over all things concedes these privileges to you.

For then hast a little strength - This would imply that they had not great vigor, but still that, notwithstanding there were so many obstacles to their doing good, and so many temptations to evil, there still remained with them some degree of energy. They were not wholly dead; and as long as that was the case, the door was still open for them to do good. The words "little strength"may refer either to the smallness of the number - meaning that they were few; or it may refer to the spiritual life and energy of the church - meaning that, though feeble, their vital energy was not wholly gone. The more natural interpretation seems to be to refer it to the latter; and the sense is, that although they had not the highest degree of energy, or had not all that the Saviour desired they should have, they were not wholly dead. The Saviour saw among them the evidences of spiritual life; and in view of that he says he had set before them an open door, and there was abundant opportunity to employ all the energy and zeal which they had. It may be remarked that the same thing is true now; that wherever there is any vitality in a church, the Saviour will furnish ample opportunity that it may be employed in his service.

And hast not denied my name - When Christians were brought before pagan magistrates in times of persecution, they were required to renounce the name of Christ, and to disown him in a public manner. It is possible that, amidst the persecutions that raged in the early times, the members of the church at Philadelphia had been summoned to such a trial, and they had stood the trial firmly. It would seem from the following verse, that the efforts which had been made to induce them to renounce the name of Christ had been made by those who professed to be Jews, though they evinced the spirit of Satan. If so, then the attempt was probably to convince them that Jesus was not the Christ. This attempt would be made in all places where there were Jews.

Barnes: Rev 3:9 - -- Behold, I will make - Greek, "I give"- διÌδωμι didoÌ„mi ; that is, I will arrange matters so that this shall occur. The word implie...

Behold, I will make - Greek, "I give"- διÌδωμι didoÌ„mi ; that is, I will arrange matters so that this shall occur. The word implies that he had power to do this, and consequently proves that he has power over the heart of man, and Call secure such a result as he chooses.

Them of the synagogue of Satan, which say they are Jews - Who profess to be Jews, but are really of the synagogue of Satan. See the notes on Rev 2:9. The meaning is, that, though they were of Jewish extraction, and boasted much of being Jews, yet they were really under the influence of Satan, and their assemblages deserved to be called his "synagogue."

And are not, but do lie - It is a false profession altogether. Compare notes on 1Jo 1:6.

Behold, I will make them to come and worship before thy feet - The word rendered "worship"here, means, properly, to full prostrate; and then to do homage, or to worship in the proper sense, as this was commonly done by falling prostrate. See the notes on Mat 2:2. So far as the word is concerned, it may refer either to spiritual homage, that is, the worship of God; or it may mean respect as shown to superiors. If it is used here in the sense of divine worship properly so called, it means that they would be constrained to come and worship "before them,"or in their very presence; if it is used in the more general signification, it means that they would be constrained to show them honor and respect. The latter is the probable meaning; that is, that they would be constrained to acknowledge that they were the children of God, or that God regarded them with his favor. It does not mean necessarily that they would themselves be converted to Christ, but that, as they had been accustomed to revile and oppose those who were true Christians, they would be constrained to come and render them the respect due to those who were sincerely endeavoring to serve their Maker. The truth taught here is, that it is in the power of the Lord Jesus so to turn the hearts of all the enemies of religion that they shall be brought to show respect to it; so to incline the minds of all people that they shall honor the church, or be at least outwardly its friends. Such homage the world shall yet be constrained to pay to it.

And to know that I have loved thee - This explains what he had just said, and shows that he means that the enemies of his church will yet be constrained to acknowledge that it enjoys the smiles of God, and that instead of being persecuted and reviled, it should be respected and loved.

Barnes: Rev 3:10 - -- Because thou hast kept the word of my patience - My word commanding or enjoining patience; that is, thou hast manifested the patience which I r...

Because thou hast kept the word of my patience - My word commanding or enjoining patience; that is, thou hast manifested the patience which I require. They had shown this in the trials which they had experienced; he promises now, that in return he will keep them in the future trials that shall come upon the world. One of the highest rewards of patience in one trial is the grace that God gives us to bear another. The fact that we have been patient and submis sive may be regarded as proof that he will give us grace that we may be patient and submissive in the trials that are to come. God does not leave those who have shown that they will not leave him.

I also will keep thee - That is, I will so keep you that you shall not sink under the trials which will prove a severe temptation to many. This does not mean that they would be actually kept from calamity of all kinds, but that they would be kept from the temptation of apostasy in calamity. He would give them grace to bear up under trials with a Christian spirit, and in such a manner that their salvation should not be endangered.

From the hour of temptation - The season; the time; the period of temptation. You shall be no kept that what will prove to be a time of temptation to so many, shall not endanger your salvation. Though others fall, you shall not; though you may be afflicted with others, yet you shall have grace to sustain you.

Which shall come upon all the world - The phrase used here - "all the world"- may either denote the whole world; or the whole Roman empire; or a large district of country; or the land of Judaea. See the notes on Luk 2:1. Here, perhaps, all that is implied is, that the trial would be very extensive or general - so much so as to embrace the world, as the word was understood by those to whom the epistle was addressed. It need not be supposed that the whole world literally was included in it, or even all the Roman empire, but what was the world to them - the region which they would embrace in that term. If there were some far-spreading calamity in the country where they resided, it would probably be all that would be fairly embraced in the meaning of the word. It is not known to what trial the speaker refers. It may have been some form of persecution, or it may have been some calamity by disease, earthquake, or famine that was to occur. Tacitus (see Wetstein, in loco) mentions an earthquake that sank twelve cities in Asia Minor, in one night, by which, among others, Philadelphia was deeply affected; and ‘ it is possible that there may have been reference here to that overwhelming calamity. But nothing can be determined with certainty in regard to this.

To try them that dwell upon the earth - To test their character. It would rather seem from this that the affliction was some form of persecution as adapted to test the fidelity of those who were affected by it. The persecutions in the Roman empire would furnish abundant occasions for such a trial.

Barnes: Rev 3:11 - -- Behold, I come quickly - That is, in the trials referred to. Compare the notes on Rev 1:1, Rev 1:11, Rev 1:16. Hold that fast which thou h...

Behold, I come quickly - That is, in the trials referred to. Compare the notes on Rev 1:1, Rev 1:11, Rev 1:16.

Hold that fast which thou hast - That is, whatever of truth and piety you now possess. See the notes on Rev 3:3.

That no man take thy crown - The crown of life appointed for all who are true believers. See the notes on 2Ti 4:8. The truth which is taught bore is, that by negligence or unfaithfulness in duty we may be deprived of the glory which we might have obtained if we had been faithful to our God and Saviour. We need to be on our constant guard, that, in a world of temptation, where the enemies of truth abound, we may not be robbed of the crown that we might have worn forever. Compare notes on 2Jo 1:8.

Barnes: Rev 3:12 - -- Him that overcometh - See the notes on Rev 2:7. Will make a pillar in the temple of my God - See the introductory remarks to this epistle...

Him that overcometh - See the notes on Rev 2:7.

Will make a pillar in the temple of my God - See the introductory remarks to this epistle. The promised reward of faithfulness here is, that he who was victorious would be honored as if he were a pillar or column in the temple of God. Such a pillar or column was partly for ornament, and partly for support; and the idea here is, that in that temple he would contribute to its beauty and the justness of its proportions, and would see the same time be honored as if he were a pillar which was necessary for the support of the temple. It is not uncommon in the New Testament to represent the church as a temple, and Christians as parts of it. See 1Co 3:16-17; 1Co 6:19; 2Co 6:16; 1Pe 2:5.

And he shall go no more out - He shall be permanent as a part of that spiritual temple. The idea of "going out"does not properly belong to a pillar; but the speaker here has in his mind the man, though represented as a column. The description of some parts would be applicable more directly to a pillar; in others more properly to a man. Compare Joh 6:37; Joh 10:28-29; 1Jo 2:19, for an illustration of the sentiment here. The main truth here is, that if we reach heaven, our happiness will be secure forever. We shall have the most absolute certainty that the welfare of the soul will no more be perilled; that we shall never be in danger of falling into temptation; that no artful foe shall ever have power to alienate our affections from God; that we shall never die. Though we may change our place, and may roam from world to world until we shall have surveyed all the wonders of creation, yet we shall never "go out of the temple of God."Compare the notes on Joh 14:2. When we reach the heavenly world our conflicts will be over, our doubts at an end. As soon as we cross the threshold we shall be greeted with the assurance, "he shall go no more out forever."That is to be our eternal abode, and whatever of joy, or felicity, or glory, that bright world can furnish, is to be ours. Happy moment I when, emerging from a world of danger and of doubt, the soul shall settle down into the calmness and peace of that state where there is the assurance of God himself that that world of bliss is to be its eternal abode!

And I will write upon him the name of my God - Considered as a pillar or column in the temple. The name of God would be conspicuously recorded on it to show that he belonged to God. The allusion is to a public edifice, on the columns of which the names of distinguished and honored persons were recorded; that is, where there is a public testimonial of the respect in which one whose name was thus recorded was held. The honor thus conferred on him "who should overcome"would be as great as if the name of that God whom he served, and whose favor and friendship he enjoyed, were inscribed on him in some conspicuous manner. The meaning is, that he would be known and recognized as belonging to God; the God of the Redeemer himself - indicated by the phrase, "the name of my God."

And the name of the city of my God - That is, indicating that he belongs to that city, or that the New Jerusalem is the city of his habitation. The idea would seem to be, that in this world, and in. all worlds wherever he goes and wherever he abides, he will be recognized as belonging to that holy city; as enjoying the rights and immunities of such a citizen.

Which is New Jerusalem - Jerusalem was the place where the temple was reared, and where the worship of God was celebrated. It thus came to be synonymous with the church - the dwelling-place of God on earth.

Which cometh down out of heaven from my God - See this explained in the notes on Rev 21:2 ff. Of course this must be a figurative representation, but the idea is plain. It is:

(1)\caps1     t\caps0 hat the church is, in accordance with settled Scripture language, represented as a city - the abode of God on earth.

(2)\caps1     t\caps0 hat is, instead of being built here, or having an earthly origin, it has its origin in heaven.

It is as if it had been constructed there, and then sent down to earth ready formed. The type, the form, the whole structure is heavenly. It is a departure from all proper laws of interpretation to explain this literally, as if a city should be actually let down from heaven; and equally so to infer from this passage, and the others of similar import in this book, that a city will be literally reared for the residence of the saints. If the passage proves anything on either of these points, it is, that a great and splendid city, such as that described in Rev. 21, will literally come down from heavens. But who can believe that? Such an interpretation, however, is by no means necessary. The comparison of the church with a beautiful city, and the fact that it has its origin in heaven, is all that is fairly implied in the passage.

And I will write upon him my new name - See the notes on Rev 2:17. The reward, therefore, promised here is, that he who, by persevering fidelity, showed that he was a real friend of the Saviour, would be honored with a permanent abode in the holy city of his habitation, In the church redeemed and triumphant he would have a perpetual dwelling; and wherever he should be, there would be given him sure pledges that he belonged to him, and was recognized as a citizen of the heavenly world. To no higher honor could any man aspire; and yet that is an honor to which the most humble and lowly may attain by faith in the Son of God.

The Epistle to the Church at Laodicea

The contents of the epistle to the church at Laodicea Rev 3:14-22 are as follows:

(1)    The usual salutation to the angel of the church, Rev 3:14,

(2)    The reference to the attributes of the speaker - the one here referred to being that he was the "Amen,""the faithful and true witness,"and "the beginning of the creation of God,"Rev 3:14.

(3)\caps1     t\caps0 he claim that he knew all their works, Rev 3:15.

(4)\caps1     t\caps0 he characteristic of the church: it was "lukewarm"- neither "cold nor hot,"Rev 3:15.

(5)\caps1     t\caps0 he punishment threatened, that he would "spue them out of his mouth,"Rev 3:16.

(6)\caps1     a\caps0 solemn reproof of their self-confidence, of their ignorance of themselves, an of their pride, when they were in fact poor, and blind, and naked; and a solemn counsel to them to apply to him for those things which would make them truly rich - which would cover up the shame of their nakedness, and which would give them clear spiritual vision, Rev 3:17-18.

(7)\caps1     a\caps0 command to repent, in view of the fact that he rebukes and chastens those whom he loves.

(8)\caps1     a\caps0 n assurance that an opportunity is still offered for repentance, represented by his standing at the door and praying for admittance, Rev 3:20.

(9)\caps1     a\caps0 promise to him that should be victorious - in this case, that he should sit down with him on his throne, Rev 3:21; and,

(10)\caps1     t\caps0 he usual call on those who had ears to hear, to attend to what the Spirit said to the churches.

Laodicea was situated in the southern part of Phrygia, near the junction of the small rivers Asopus and Carpus, on a plain washed at its edges by each. It was about 40 miles from Ephesus, and not far from Colosse and Hierapolis. In the time of Strabo it was a large city; but the frequency of earthquakes, to which this district has been always liable, demolished, long since, a large part of the city, and destroyed many of the inhabitants, and the place was abandoned, and now lies in ruins. It is now a deserted place, called by the Turks Eski-hissar, or Old Castle. From its ruins, ‘ which are numerous, consisting of the remains of temples, theaters, etc., it seems to have been situated on six or seven hills, taking up a large space of ground. The whole rising ground on which the city stood is one vast tumulus of ruins, abandoned entirely to the owl and the fox. Col. Leake says, "There are few ancient sites more likely than Laodicea to preserve many curious remains of antiquity beneath the surface of the soil; its opulence, and the earthquakes to which it was subject, rendering it probable that valuable works of art were there buried beneath the ruins of the public and private edifices."

The neighboring village contains some 50 or 60 people, among whom, on a visit of a recent traveler there, there were only two nominal Christians (circa the mid-19th century). "The name of Christianity,"says Emerson (p. 101), "is forgotten, and the only sounds that disturb the silence of its desertion are the tones of the Muezzin, whose voice from the distant village (Eski-hissar) proclaims the ascendency of Muhammed. Laodicea is even more solitary than Ephesus; for the latter has the prospect of the rolling sea or of a whitening sail to enliven its decay; while the former sits in widowed loneliness, its walls are grass-grown, its temples desolate, its very name has perished."A thunderstorm gathered on the mountains at a distance while this traveler was examining the ruins of Laodicea. He returned to Eski-hissar, and waited until the fury of the storm had abated, but set off on his journey again before it had entirely ceased to blow and to rain. "We preferred,"says he, "hastening on, to a further delay in that melancholy spot, where everything whispered desolation, and where the very wind that swept impetuously through the valley sounded like the fiendish laugh of time exulting over the destruction of man and his proudest monuments."See Prof. Stuart, vol. ii. pp. 44, 45; Kitto’ s Encyclopedia; "Smith’ s Journey to the Seven Churches,"1671; Leake, Arundell, Hartley, MacFarlane, Pococke, etc. The engraving in this vol. will furnish a representation of the ruins of Laodicea.

Barnes: Rev 3:14 - -- And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write - See the notes on Rev 1:20. These things saith the Amen - Referring, as is the ...

And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write - See the notes on Rev 1:20.

These things saith the Amen - Referring, as is the case in every epistle, to some attribute of the speaker adapted to impress their minds, or to give special force to what he was about to say to that particular church. Laodicea was characterized by lukewarmness, and the reference to the fact that he who was about to address them was the "Amen"- that is, was characterized by the simple earnestness and sincerity denoted by that word - was eminently suited to make an impression on the minds of such a people. The word "Amen"means "true,""certain,""faithful"; and, as used here, it means that he to whom it is applied is eminently true and faithful. What he affirms is true; what he promises or threatens is certain. Himself characterized by sincerity and truth (notes on 2Co 1:20), he can look with approbation only on the same thing in others: and hence he looks with displeasure on the lukewarmness which, from its very nature, always approximates insincerity. This was an attribute, therefore, every way appropriate to be referred to in addressing a lukewarm church.

The faithful and true witness - This is presenting the idea implied in the word "Amen"in a more complete form, but substantially the same thing is referred to. He is a witness for God and his truth, and he can approve of nothing which the God of truth would not approve. See the notes on Rev 1:5.

The beginning of the creation of God - This expression is a very important one in regard to the rank and dignity of the Saviour, and, like all similar expressions respecting him, its meaning has been much controverted. Compare the notes on Col 1:15. The phrase used here is susceptible, properly, of only one of the following significations, namely, either:

(a)\caps1     t\caps0 hat he was the beginning of the creation in the sense that he caused the universe to begin to exist - that is, that he was the author of all things; or.

(b)\caps1     t\caps0 hat he was the first created being; or.

©\caps1     t\caps0 hat he holds the primacy over all, and is at the head of the universe.

It is not necessary to examine any other proposed interpretations, for the only other senses supposed to be conveyed by the words, that he is the beginning of the creation in the sense I that he rose from the dead as the first-fruits of them that sleep, or that he is the head of the spiritual creation of God, axe so foreign to the natural meaning of the words as to need no special refutation. As to the three significations suggested above, it may be observed, that the first one - that he is the author of the creation, and in that sense the beginning - though expressing a scriptural doctrine Joh 1:3; Eph 3:9; Col 1:16, is not in accordance with the proper meaning of the word used here - ἀÏχὴ archeÌ„ . The word properly refers to the "commencement"of a thing, not its "authorship,"and denotes properly primacy in time, and primacy in rank, but not primacy in the sense of causing anything to exist. The two ideas which run through the word as it is used in the New Testament are those just suggested. For the former - primacy in regard to time - that is properly the commencement of a thing, see the following passages where the word occurs: Mat 19:4, Mat 19:8; Mat 24:8, Mat 24:21; Mar 1:1; Mar 10:6; Mar 13:8, Mar 13:19; Luk 1:2; Joh 1:1-2; Joh 2:11; Joh 6:64; Joh 8:25, Joh 8:44; Joh 15:27; Joh 16:4; Act 11:15; 1Jo 1:1; 1Jo 2:7, 1Jo 2:13-14, 1Jo 2:24; 1Jo 3:8, 1Jo 3:11; 2Jo 1:5-6. For the latter signification, primacy of rank or authority, see the following places: Luk 12:11; Luk 20:20; Rom 8:38; 1Co 15:24; Eph 1:21; Eph 3:10; Eph 6:12; Col 1:16, Col 1:18; Col 2:10, Col 2:15; Tit 3:1. The word is not, therefore, found in the sense of authorship, as denoting that one is the beginning of anything in the sense that he caused it to have an existence. As to the second of the significations suggested, that it means that he was the first created being, it may be observed:

(a) that this is not a necessary signification of the phrase, since no one can show that this is the only proper meaning which could be given to the words, and therefore the phrase cannot be adduced to prove that he is himself a created being. If it were demonstrated from other sources that Christ was, in fact, a created being, and the first that God had made, it cannot be denied that this language would appropriately express that fact. But it cannot be made out from the mere use of the language here; and as the language is susceptible of other interpretations, it cannot be employed to prove that Christ is a created being.

(b) Such an interpretation would be at variance with all those passages which speak of him as uncreated and eternal; which ascribe divine attributes to him; which speak of him as himself the Creator of all things. Compare Joh 1:1-3; Col 1:16; Heb 1:2, Heb 1:6,Heb 1:8, Heb 1:10-12. The third signification, therefore, remains, that he is "the beginning of the creation of God,"in the sense that he is the head or prince of the creation; that is, that he presides over it so far as the purposes of redemption are to be accomplished, and so far as is necessary for those purposes. This is:

(1)\caps1     i\caps0 n accordance with the meaning of the word, Luk 12:11; Luk 20:20, et al. ut supra ; and,

(2)\caps1     i\caps0 n accordance with the uniform statements respecting the Redeemer, that "all power is given unto him in heaven and in earth"Mat 28:18; that God has "given him power over all flesh"Joh 17:2; that all things are "put under his feet"the. Joh 2:8; 1Co 15:27); that he is exalted over all things, Eph 1:20-22. Having this rank, it was proper that he should speak with authority to the church at Laodicea.

Barnes: Rev 3:15 - -- I know thy works - notes on Rev 2:2. That thou art neither cold nor hot - The word "cold"here would seem to denote the state where there ...

I know thy works - notes on Rev 2:2.

That thou art neither cold nor hot - The word "cold"here would seem to denote the state where there was no pretension to religion; where everything was utterly lifeless and dead. The language is obviously figurative, but it is such as is often employed, when we speak of one as being cold toward another, as having a cold or icy heart, etc. The word "hot"would denote, of course, the opposite - warm and zealous in their love and service. The very words that we are constrained to use when speaking on this subject - such words as ardent (that is, hot or burning); fervid (that is, very hot, burning, boiling) - show how necessary it is to use such words, and how common it is. The state indicated here, therefore, would be that in which there was a profession of religion, but no warm-hearted piety; in which there was not, on the one hand, open and honest opposition to him, and, on the other, such warm-hearted and honest love as he had a right to look for among his professed friends; in which there was a profession of that religion which ought to warm the heart with love, and fill the soul with zeal in the cause of the Redeemer; but where the only result, in fact, was deadness and indifference to him and his cause. Among those who made no profession he had reason to expect nothing but coldness; among those who made a profession he had a right to expect the glow of a warm affection; but he found nothing but indifference.

I would thou wert cold or hot - That is, I would prefer either of those states to what now exists. Anything better than this condition, where love is professed, but where it does not exist; where vows have been assumed which are not fulfilled. Why he would prefer that they should be "hot"is clear enough; but why would he prefer a state of utter coldness - a state where there was no profession of real love? To this question the following answers may be given:

(1) Such a state of open and professed coldness or indifference is more honest. There is no disguise; no concealment; no pretence. We know where one in this state "may be found"; we know with whom we are dealing; we know what to expect. Sad as the state is, it is at least honest; and we are so made that we all prefer such a character to one where professions are made which are never to be realized - to a state of insincerity and hypocrisy.

\caps1 (2) s\caps0 uch a state is more honorable. It is a more elevated condition of mind, and marks a higher character. Of a man who is false to his engagements, who makes professions and promises never to be realized, we can make nothing. There is essential meanness in such a character, and there is nothing in it which we can respect. But in the character of the man who is openly and avowedly opposed to anything; who takes his stand, and is earnest and zealous in his course, though it be wrong, there are traits which may be, under a better direction, elements of true greatness and magnanimity. In the character of Saul of Tarsus there were always the elements of true greatness; in that of Judas Iscariot there were never. The one was capable of becoming one of the noblest men that has ever lived on the earth; the other, even under the personal teaching of the Redeemer for years, was nothing but a traitor - a man of essential meanness.

\caps1 (3) t\caps0 here is more hope of conversion and salvation in such a case. There could always have been a ground of hope that Saul would be converted and saved, even when "breathing out threatening and slaughter"; of Judas, when numbered among the professed disciples of the Saviour, there was no hope. The most hopeless of all persons, in regard to salvation, are those who are members of the church without any true religion; who have made a profession without any evidence of personal piety; who are content with a name to live. This is so, because:

(a) the essential character of anyone who will allow himself to do this is eminently unfavorable to true religion. There is a lack of that thorough honesty and sincerity which is so necessary for true conversion to God. He who is content to profess to be what he really is not, is riot a man on whom the truths of Christianity are likely to make an impression.

(b) Such a mall never applies the truth to himself. Truth that is addressed to impenitent sinners he does not apply to himself, of course; for he does not rank himself in that class of persons. Truth addressed to hypocrites he will not apply to himself; for no one, however insincere and hollow he may be, chooses to act on the presumption that he is himself a hypocrite, or so as to leave others to suppose that he regards himself as such. The means of grace adapted to save a sinner, as such, he will not use; for he is in the church, and chooses to regard himself as safe. Efforts made to reclaim him he will resist; for he will regard it as proof of a meddlesome spirit, and an uncharitable judging in others, if they consider him to be anything different from what he professes to be. What right have they to go back of his profession, and assume that he is insincere? As a consequence, there are probably fewer persons by far converted of those who come into the church without any religion, than of any other class of persons of similar number; and the most hopeless of all conditions, in respect to conversion and salvation, is when one enters the church deceived.

© It may be presumed that, for these reasons, God himself will make less direct effort to convert and save such persons. As there are fewer appeals that can be brought to bear on them; as there is less in their character that is noble, and that can be depended on in promoting the salvation of a soul; and as there is special guilt in hypocrisy, it may be presumed that God will more frequently leave such persons to their chosen course, than he will those who make no professions of religion. Comp, Psa 109:17-18; Jer 7:16; Jer 11:14; Jer 14:11; Isa 1:15; Hos 4:17.

Barnes: Rev 3:16 - -- So then because thou art lukewarm ... I will spue thee out of my mouth - Referring, perhaps, to the well-known fact that tepid water tends to p...

So then because thou art lukewarm ... I will spue thee out of my mouth - Referring, perhaps, to the well-known fact that tepid water tends to produce sickness at the stomach, and an inclination to vomit. The image is intensely strong, and denotes deep disgust and loathing at the indifference which prevailed in the church at Laodicea. The idea is, that they would be utterly rejected and cast off as a church - a threatening of which there has been an abundant fulfillment in subsequent times. It may be remarked, also, that what was threatened to that church may be expected to occur to all churches, if they are in the same condition; and that all professing Christians, and Christian churches, that are lukewarm, have special reason to dread the indignation of the Saviour.

Barnes: Rev 3:17 - -- Because thou sayest, I am rich - So far as the language here is concerned, this may refer either to riches literally, or to spiritual riches; t...

Because thou sayest, I am rich - So far as the language here is concerned, this may refer either to riches literally, or to spiritual riches; that is, to a boast of having religion enough. Prof. Stuart supposes that it refers to the former, and so do Wetstein, Vitringa, and others. Doddridge, Rosenmuller, and others, understand it in the latter sense. There is no doubt that there was much wealth in Laodicea, and that, as a people, they prided themselves on their riches. See the authorities in Wetstein on Col 2:1, and Vitringa, p. 160. It is not easy to determine which is the true sense; but may it not have been that there was an allusion to both, and that, in every respect, they boasted that they had enough? May it not have been so much the characteristic of that people to boast of their wealth, that they carried the spirit into everything, and manifested it even in regard to religion? Is it not true that they who have much of this world’ s goods, when they make a profession of religion, are very apt to suppose that they are well off in everything, and to feel self-complacent and happy? And is not the possession of much wealth by an individual Christian, or a Christian church, likely to produce just the lukewarmness which it is said existed in the church at Laodicea? If we thus understand it, there will be an accordance with the well-known fact that Laodicea was distinguished for its riches, and, at the same time, with another fact, so common as to be almost universal, that the possession of great wealth tends to make a professed Christian self-complacent and satisfied in every respect; to make him feel that, although he may not have much religion, yet he is on the whole well off; and to produce, in religion, a state of just such lukewarmness as the Saviour here says was loathsome and odious.

And increased with goods - πεπλουτηκα peploutēka - "am enriched."This is only a more emphatic and intensive way of saying the same thing. It has no reference to the kind of riches referred to, but merely denotes the confident manner in which they affirmed that they were rich.

And have need of nothing - Still an emphatic and intensive way of saying that they were rich. In all respects their needs were satisfied; they had enough of everything. They felt, therefore, no stimulus to effort; they sat down in contentment, self-complacency, and indifference. It is almost unavoidable that those who are rich in this world’ s goods should feel that they have need of nothing. There is no more common illusion among people than the feeling that if one has wealth he has everything; that there is no want of his nature which cannot be satisfied with that; and that he may now sit down in contentment and ease. Hence, the almost universal desire to be rich; hence the common feeling among those who are rich that there is no occasion for solicitude or care for anything else. Compare Luk 12:19.

And knowest not - There is no just impression in regard to the real poverty and wretchedness of your condition.

That thou art wretched - The word "wretched"we now use to denote the actual consciousness of being miserable, as applicable to one who is sunk into deep distress or affliction. The word here, however, refers rather, to the condition itself than to the consciousness of that condition, for it is said that they did not know it. Their state was, in fact, a miserable state, and was suited to produce actual distress if they had had any just sense of it, though they thought that it was otherwise.

And miserable - This word has, with us now, a similar signification; but the term used here - ἐληινὸς elēinos - rather means a pitiable state than one actually felt to be so. The meaning is, that their condition was one that was suited to excite pity or compassion; not that they were actually miserable. Compare the notes on 1Co 15:19.

And poor - Notwithstanding all their boast of having enough. They really had not what was necessary to meet the actual needs of their nature, and, therefore, they were poor. Their worldly property could not meet the needs of their souls; and, with all their pretensions to piety, they had not religion enough to meet the necessities of their nature when calamities should come, or when death should approach; and they were, therefore, in the strictest sense of the term, poor.

And blind - That is, in a spiritual respect. They did not see the reality of their condition; they had no just views of themselves, of the character of God, of the way of salvation. This seems to be said in connection with the boast which they made in their own minds - that they had everything; that they wanted nothing. One of the great blessings of life is clearness of vision, and their boast that they had everything must have included that; but the speaker here says that they lacked that indispensable thing to completeness of character and to full enjoyment. With all their boasting, they were actually blind - and how could one who was in that state say that he "had need of nothing?"

And naked - Of course, spiritually. Salvation is often represented as a garment Mat 22:11-12; Rev 6:11; Rev 7:9, Rev 7:13-14; and the declaration here is equivalent to saying that they had no religion. They had nothing to cover the nakedness of the soul, and in respect to the real needs of their nature they were like one who had no clothing in reference to cold, and heat, and storms, and to the shame of nakedness. How could such an one be regarded as rich? We may learn from this instructive verse:

(1) That people may think themselves to be rich, and yet, in fact, be miserably poor. They may have the wealth of this world in abundance, and yet have nothing that really will meet their needs in disappointment, bereavement, sickness, death; the needs of their never-dying soul; their needs in eternity. What had the "rich fool,"as he is commonly termed, in the parable, when he came to die? Luk 12:16 ff. What had "Dives,"as he is commonly termed, to meet the needs of his nature when he went down to hell? Luk 16:19 ff.

\caps1 (2) p\caps0 eople may have much property, and think that they have all they want, and yet be wretched. In the sense that their condition is a wretched condition, this is always true; and in the sense that they are consciously wretched, this may be, and often is, true also.

\caps1 (3) p\caps0 eople may have great property, and yet be miserable. This is true in the sense that their condition is a pitiable one, and in the sense that they are actually unhappy. There is no more pitiable condition than that where one has great property, and is self-complacent and proud, and who has nevertheless no God, no Saviour, no hope of heaven, and who perhaps that very day may "lift up his eyes in hell, being in torments"; and it need not be added that there is no greater actual misery in this world than what sometimes finds its way into the palaces of the rich. He greatly errs who thinks that misery is confined to the cottages of the poor.

\caps1 (4) p\caps0 eople may be rich, and think they have all that they want, and yet be blind to their condition. They really have no distinct vision of anything. They have no just views of God, of themselves, of their duty, of this world, or of the next. In most important respects they are in a worse condition than the inmates of an asylum for the blind, for they may have clear views of God and of heaven. Mental darkness is a greater calamity than the loss of natural vision; and there is many an one who is surrounded by all that affluence can give, who never yet had one correct view of his own character, of his God, or of the reality of his condition, and whose condition might have been far better if he had actually been born blind.

\caps1 (5) t\caps0 here may be gorgeous robes of adorning, and yet real nakedness. With all the decorations that wealth can impart, there may be a nakedness of the soul as real as that of the body would be if, without a rag to cover it, it were exposed to cold, and storm, and shame. The soul destitute of the robes of salvation, is in a worse condition than the body without raiment; for how can it bear the storms of wrath that shall beat upon it forever, and the shame of its exposure in the last dread day?

Barnes: Rev 3:18 - -- I counsel thee to buy of me gold tried in the fire - Pure gold; such as has been subjected to the action of heat to purify it from dross. See t...

I counsel thee to buy of me gold tried in the fire - Pure gold; such as has been subjected to the action of heat to purify it from dross. See the notes on 1Pe 1:7. Gold here is emblematic of religion - as being the most precious of the metals, and the most valued by human beings. They professed to be rich, but were not; and he counsels them to obtain from him what would make them truly rich.

That thou mayest be rich - In the true and proper sense of the word. With true religion; with the favor and friendship of the Redeemer, they would have all that they really needed, and would never be in want.

And white raiment - The emblem of purity and salvation. See the notes on Rev 3:4. This is said in reference to the fact Rev 3:17 that they were then naked.

That thou mayest be clothed - With the garments of salvation. This refers, also, to true religion, meaning that what the Redeemer furnishes will answer the same purpose in respect to the soul which clothing does in reference to the body. Of course it cannot be understood literally, nor should the language be pressed too closely, as if there was too strict a resemblance.

And that the shame of thy nakedness do not appear - We clothe the body as well for decency as for protection against cold, and storm, and heat. The soul is to be clothed that the "shame"of its sinfulness may not be exhibited, and that it may not be offensive and repellent in the sight.

And anoint thine eyes with eye-salve - In allusion to the fact that they were blind, Rev 3:17. The word "eye-salve"- κολλουÌÏιον kollourion - occurs no where else in the New Testament. It is a diminutive from κολλυÌÏα kollura - collyra - a coarse bread or cake, and means properly a small cake or cracknel. It is applied to eye-salve as resembling such a cake, and refers to a medicament prepared for sore or weak eyes. It was compounded of various substances supposed to have a healing quality. See Wetstein, in loco. The reference here is to a spiritual healing - meaning that, ill respect to their spiritual vision, what he would furnish would produce the same effect as the collyrium or eye-salve would in diseased eyes. The idea is, that the grace of the gospel enables people who were before blind to see clearly the character of God, the beauty of the way of salvation, the loveliness of the person and work of Christ, etc. See the notes on Eph 1:18.

Barnes: Rev 3:19 - -- As many as I love, I rebuke and chasten - Of course, only on the supposition that they deserve it. The meaning is, that it is a proof of love o...

As many as I love, I rebuke and chasten - Of course, only on the supposition that they deserve it. The meaning is, that it is a proof of love on his part, if his professed friends go astray, to recall them by admonitions and by trials. So a father calls back his children who are disobedient; and there is no higher proof of his love than when, with great pain to himself, he administers such chastisement as shall save his child. See the sentiment here expressed fully explained in the notes on Heb 12:6. The language is taken from Pro 3:12.

Be zealous therefore, and repent - Be earnest, strenuous, ardent in your purpose to exercise true repentance, and to turn from the error of your ways. Lose no time; spare no labor, that you may obtain such a state of mind that it shall not be necessary to bring upon you the severe discipline which always comes on those who continue lukewarm in religion. The truth taught here is, that when the professed followers of Christ have become lukewarm in his service, they should lose no time in returning to him, anti seeking his favor again. As sure as he has any true love for them, if this is not done he will bring upon them some heavy calamity, alike to rebuke them for their errors, and to recover them to himself.

Barnes: Rev 3:20 - -- Behold, I stand at the door, and knock - Intimating that, though they had erred, the way of repentance and hope was not closed against them. He...

Behold, I stand at the door, and knock - Intimating that, though they had erred, the way of repentance and hope was not closed against them. He was still willing to be gracious, though their conduct had been such as to be loathsome, Rev 3:16. To see the real force of this language, we must remember how disgusting and offensive their conduct had been to him. And yet he was willing, notwithstanding this, to receive them to his favor; nay more, he stood and pled with them that he might be received with the hospitality that would be shown to a friend or stranger. The language here is so plain that it scarcely needs explanation. It is taken from an act when we approach a dwelling, and, by a well-understood sign - knocking - announce our presence, and ask for admission. The act of knocking implies two things:

(a)\caps1     t\caps0 hat we desire admittance; and,

(b)\caps1     t\caps0 hat we recognize the right of him who dwells in the house to open the door to us or not, as he shall please.

We would not obtrude upon him; we would not force his door; and if, after we are sure that we are heard, we are not admitted, we turn quietly away. Both of these things are implied here by the language used by the Saviour when he approaches man as represented under the image of knocking at the door: that he desires to be admitted to our friendship; and that he recognizes our freedom in the matter. He does not obtrude himself upon us, nor does he employ force to find admission to the heart. If admitted, he comes and dwells with us; if rejected, he turns quietly away - perhaps to return and knock again, perhaps never to come back. The language used here, also, may be understood as applicable to all persons, and to all the methods by which the Saviour seeks to come into the heart of a sinner. It would properly refer to anything which would announce his presence: his word; his Spirit; the solemn events of his providence; the invitations of his gospel. In these and in other methods he comes to man; and the manner in which these invitations ought to be estimated would be seen by supposing that he came to us personally and solicited our friendship, and proposed to be our Redeemer. It may be added here, that this expression proves that the attempt at reconciliation begins with the Saviour. It is not that the sinner goes out to meet him, or to seek for him; it is that the Saviour presents himself at the door of the heart, as if he were desirous to enjoy the friendship of man. This is in accordance with the uniform language of the New Testament, that "God so loved the world as to give his only-begotten Son"; that "Christ came to seek and to save the lost"; that the Saviour says, "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are heavy laden,"etc. Salvation, in the Scriptures, is never represented as originated by man.

If any man hear my voice - Perhaps referring to a custom then prevailing, that he who knocked spake, in order to let it be known who it was. This might be demanded in the night Luk 11:5, or when there was apprehension of danger, and it may have been the custom when John wrote. The language here, in accordance with the uniform usage in the Scriptures (compare Isa 55:1; Joh 7:37; Rev 22:17), is universal, and proves that the invitations of the gospel are made, and are to be made, not to a part only, but fully and freely to all people; for, although this originally had reference to the members of the church in Laodicea, yet the language chosen seems to have been of design so universal ( ἐαÌν τις ean tis ) as to be applicable to every human being; and anyone, of any age and in any land, would be authorized to apply this to himself, and, under the protection of this invitation, to come to the Saviour, and to plead this promise as one that fairly included himself. It may be observed further, that this also recognizes the freedom of man. It is submitted to him whether he will hear the voice of the Redeemer or not; and whether he will open the door and admit him or not. He speaks loud enough, and distinctly enough, to be heard, but he does not force the door if it is not voluntarily opened.

And open the door - As one would when a stranger or friend stood and knocked. The meaning here is simply, if anyone will admit me; that is, receive me as a friend. The act of receiving him is as voluntary on our part as it is when we rise and open the door to one who knocks. It may be added:

(1)\caps1     t\caps0 hat this is an easy thing. Nothing is more easy than to open the door when one knocks; and so everywhere in the Scriptures it is represented as an easy thing, if the heart is willing, to secure the salvation of the soul.

(2)\caps1     t\caps0 his is a reasonable thing.

We invite him who knocks at the door to come in. We always assume, unless there is reason to suspect the contrary, that he applies for peaceful and friendly purposes. We deem it the height of rudeness to let one stand and knock long; or to let him go away with no friendly invitation to enter our dwelling. Yet how different does the sinner treat the Saviour! How long does he suffer him to knock at the door of his heart, with no invitation to enter - no act of common civility such as that with which he would greet even a stranger! And with how much coolness and indifference does he see him turn away - perhaps to come back no more, and with no desire that he ever should return!

I will come in to him, and will sup with him, and he with me - This is an image denoting intimacy and friendship. Supper, with the ancients, was the principal social meal; and the idea here is, that between the Saviour and those who would receive him there would be the intimacy which subsists between those who sit down to a friendly meal together. In all countries and times, to eat together, to break bread together, has been the symbol of friendship, and this the Saviour promises here. The truths, then, which are taught in this verse, are:

(1)\caps1     t\caps0 hat the invitation of the gospel is made to all - "if any man hear my voice";

(2)\caps1     t\caps0 hat the movement toward reconciliation and friendship is originated by the Saviour - "behold, I stand at the door and knock";

(3)\caps1     t\caps0 hat there is a recognition of our own free agency in religion - "if any man will hear my voice, and open the door";

(4)\caps1     t\caps0 he ease of the terms of salvation, represented by "hearing his voice,"and "opening the door"; and,

(5)\caps1     t\caps0 he blessedness of thus admitting him, arising from his friendship - "I will sup with him, and he with me."What friend can man have who would confer so many benefits on him as the Lord Jesus Christ? Who is there that he should so gladly welcome to his bosom?

Barnes: Rev 3:21 - -- To him that overcometh - See the notes on Rev 2:7. Will I grant to sit with me in my throne - That is, they will share his honors and his...

To him that overcometh - See the notes on Rev 2:7.

Will I grant to sit with me in my throne - That is, they will share his honors and his triumphs. See the notes on Rev 2:26-27; compare the notes on Rom 8:17.

Even as I also overcame - As I gained a victory over the world, and over the power of the tempter. As the reward of this, he is exalted to the throne of the universe Phi 2:6-11, and in these honors, achieved by their great and glorious Head, all the redeemed will share.

And am set down with my Father in his throne - Compare the notes on Phi 2:6-11. That is, he has dominion over the universe. All things are put under his feet, and in the strictest unison and with perfect harmony he is united with the Father in administering the affairs of all worlds. The dominion of the Father is that of the Son - that of the Son is that of the Father; for they are one. See the notes on Joh 5:19; compare the Eph 1:20-22 notes; 1Co 15:24-28 notes.

Barnes: Rev 3:22 - -- He that hath an ear ... - See the notes on Rev 2:7. This closes the epistolary part of this book, and the "visions"properly commence with the n...

He that hath an ear ... - See the notes on Rev 2:7.

This closes the epistolary part of this book, and the "visions"properly commence with the next chapter. Two remarks may be made in the conclusion of this exposition:

(1) The first relates to the truthfulness of the predictions in these epistles. is an illustration of that truthfulness, and of the present correspondence of the condition of those churches with what the Saviour said to John they would be, the following striking passage may be introduced from Mr. Gibbon. It occurs in his description of the conquests of the Turks ("Decline and Fall,"iv. 260, 261). "Two Turkish chieftains, Sarukhan and Aidin left their names to their conquests, and their conquests to their posterity. The captivity or ruin of the seven churches of Asia was consummated; and the barbarous lords of Ionia and Lydia still trample on the monuments of classic and Christian antiquity. In the loss of Ephesus, the Christians deplored the fall of the first angel, the extinction of the first candlestick of the Revelations: the desolation is complete; and the temple of Diana, or the church of Mary, will equally elude the search of the curious traveler. The circus and three stately theaters of Laodicea are now populated with wolves and foxes; Sardis is reduced to a miserable village; the God of Muhammed, without a rival or a son, is invoked in the mosques of Thyatira and Pergamos; and the populousness of Smyrna is supported by the foreign trade of Franks and Armenians. Philadelphia alone has been saved by prophecy or courage. At a distance from the sea, forgotten by the emperors, encompassed on all sides by the Turks, her valiant citizens defended their religion and freedom above fourscore years, and at length capitulated with the proudest of the Ottomans. Among the Greek colonies and churches of Asia, Philadelphia is still erect, a column in a scene of ruins; a pleasing example that the paths of honor and safety may sometimes be the same."

\caps1 (2) t\caps0 he second remark relates to the applicability of these important truths to us. There is perhaps no part of the New Testament more searching than these brief epistles to the seven churches; and though those to whom they were addressed have long since passed away, and the churches have long since become extinct; though darkness, error, and desolation have come over the places where these churches once stood, yet the principles laid down in these epistles still live, and they are full of admonition to Christians in all ages and all lands. It is a consideration of as much importance to us as it was to these churches, that the Saviour now knows our works; that he sees in the church, and in any individual, all that there is to commend and all that there is to reprove; that he has power to reward or punish now as he had then; that the same rules in apportioning rewards and punishments will still be acted on; that he who overcomes the temptations of the world will find an appropriate reward; that those who live in sin must meet with the proper recompense, and that those who are lukewarm in his service will be spurned with unutterable loathing. His rebukes are awful; but his promises are full of tenderness and kindness. While they who have embraced error, and they who are living in sin, have occasion to tremble before him, they who are endeavoring to perform their duty may find in these epistles enough to cheer their hearts, and to animate them with the hope of final victory, and of the most ample and glorious reward.

Poole: Rev 3:3 - -- Remember therefore how thou hast received and heard to wit, from the apostles of the Lord Jesus Christ. All true reformation, either of doctrine or m...

Remember therefore how thou hast received and heard to wit, from the apostles of the Lord Jesus Christ. All true reformation, either of doctrine or manners, lies in the reduction of it to the doctrine delivered, and the rules of life given by them.

And hold fast, and repent: wherein our judgment or practice is conformable to theirs, it is to be held fast; wherein it hath varied, it is to be repented of.

If therefore thou shalt not watch, I will come on thee as a thief if thou shalt not keep thyself free from gross sins or errors, and give diligence to do it, I will come to thee, not as a friend to comfort and refresh thee, but as a thief to rob and destroy thee, and that suddenly.

And thou shalt not know what hour I will come upon thee I will surprise thee with my judgments, and thou shalt not know when my judgments shall overtake thee.

Poole: Rev 3:4 - -- Thou hast a few names even in Sardis a few persons even in that polluted place, which have not defiled their garments who have kept their integrity...

Thou hast a few names even in Sardis a few persons even in that polluted place,

which have not defiled their garments who have kept their integrity and innocency. There is a garment of Christ’ s righteousness, which, once put on, is never lost, nor can be defiled; but there are garments of holiness also: hence the apostle calls to Christians to be clothed with humility. As sin is expressed under the notion of nakedness, so holiness is expressed under the notion of a garment, Eze 16:10 1Pe 5:5 . Those who have not defiled their garments, are those that have kept a pure conscience.

And they shall walk with me in white: the Romans used to clothe their nobles, and such as were competitors for honours, in white garments; the priests and Levites also amongst the Jews, when they ministered, were clothed in white, 2Ch 5:12 . God and his holy angels are in Scripture set out to us as clothed in white, Dan 7:9 Mat 17:2 28:3 . Those that triumphed upon victories obtained, were clothed in white amongst the Romans. To these usages, or some of them, the allusion is, and the meaning is, they shall be to me as kings, and priests, and nobles, they shall be made partakers of my glory:

for they are worthy though they have not merited it, yet I have judged them worthy; they are worthy, though not with respect to their merit, yet with respect to my promise.

Poole: Rev 3:5 - -- He that overcometh, the same shall be clothed in white raiment he that overcometh in the spiritual fight, shall be honoured as a triumpher. And I wi...

He that overcometh, the same shall be clothed in white raiment he that overcometh in the spiritual fight, shall be honoured as a triumpher.

And I will not blot out his name out of the book of life that is, I will give him everlasting life: the phrase is an allusion to men who use to keep books, and in them the names of persons to whom they will show kindness. The book of life; applied to God, signifieth his eternal predestination, or purpose to bring some to heaven; out of which book, though none can be blotted out whose name is once wrote in, yet those whose names are in this book may be under some fears and apprehensions to the contrary. Christ assures them to the contrary, that they shall certainly be saved, but lets them know that this assurance depends upon their perseverance; of which also some make this phrase a promise.

But I will confess his name before my Father, and before his angels in the day of judgment I will own them, and acknowledge them as mine before my Father and all the angels, Mat 10:32 Luk 12:8 .

Poole: Rev 3:6 - -- The common conclusion of all the epistles: See Poole on "Rev 2:7" , See Poole on "Rev 2:11" , See Poole on "Rev 2:17" , See Poole on "Rev 2:29" ...

The common conclusion of all the epistles: See Poole on "Rev 2:7" , See Poole on "Rev 2:11" , See Poole on "Rev 2:17" , See Poole on "Rev 2:29" .

Those who make these churches typical, and the epistles prophetical of the complexion of all the churches of Christ which shall be to the end of the world, say the church of Sardis typifieth those reformed churches after the year 1560, that should cast off antichrist, but continue in a more imperfect state, contenting themselves with a bare disclaiming antichrist, but not rising up to a perfect reformation.

Poole: Rev 3:7 - -- And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia write: See Poole on "Rev 1:20" , See Poole on "Rev 2:1" . Of this Philadelphia we read no more in h...

And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia write:

See Poole on "Rev 1:20" , See Poole on "Rev 2:1" . Of this Philadelphia we read no more in holy writ. We are told there were three cities of that name, one in Egypt, one in Syria, another in Phrygia, or in Mysia or Lydia, which is that here intended.

These things saith he that is holy that is, the Holy One, Act 3:14 .

He that is true true to his word of promise or threatening.

He that hath the key of David that is, the key of the house of David, mentioned Isa 22:22 ; the key of the church, which answered the temple, the house David designed for God: the use of the key is to open and shut, or make fast.

He that openeth, and no man shutteth; and shutteth, and no man openeth who admits into the kingdom of heaven whom he pleaseth, and none can hinder him, and shutteth out of heaven whom he pleaseth. The house of David typified the church, the church containeth the number of those that shall be saved; Christ is here described as he who hath the sole and absolute power of saving and condemning whom he pleaseth.

Poole: Rev 3:8 - -- I know thy works: it is very probable, that our Lord, by these ministers’ works, understands the works proper to them in their function, their ...

I know thy works: it is very probable, that our Lord, by these ministers’ works, understands the works proper to them in their function, their labour in preaching and propagating the gospel, which Christ did not only know and observe, but also approve of, and promiseth them a liberty to go on, and success in their labours, under the notion of

an open door: see 1Co 16:9 2Co 2:12 Col 4:3 .

And no man can shut it so as it should not be in the power of adversaries to hinder his success.

For thou hast a little strength both inward strength, and outward helps and advantages.

And hast kept my word the doctrine of faith is by thee kept pure, as also my precepts for a holy life.

And hast not denied my name and thou hast not been by any temptation prevailed upon to apostatize from the profession of the gospel.

Poole: Rev 3:9 - -- Them of the synagogue of Satan so he calleth all Jews that opposed Christianity, or all pretended but not real professors. Which say they are Jews, ...

Them of the synagogue of Satan so he calleth all Jews that opposed Christianity, or all pretended but not real professors.

Which say they are Jews, and are not, but do lie : For he is not a Jew, which is one outwardly; neither is that circumcision which is of the flesh; but he is a Jew, which is one inwardly, & c., Rom 2:28,29 . By this term also he may mean all false and hypocritical professors, who would make themselves the church, the only church of God, but are far enough from it, hating, maligning, and opposing those who would keep stricter to the rule of the gospel.

Behold, I will make them to come and worship before thy feet I will by my providence so order it, that these men shall come and honour thee, paying a civil respect and homage to thee.

And to know that I have loved thee and to know that I have a greater kindness for thee than for them.

Poole: Rev 3:10 - -- Because thou hast kept the word of my patience: the doctrine of the gospel is, unquestionably, the word here called the word of the Lord’ s pati...

Because thou hast kept the word of my patience: the doctrine of the gospel is, unquestionably, the word here called the word of the Lord’ s patience, because it was that word, that doctrine, which (as those times went) could not he adhered to and observed without much patience in those that adhered to it; both actively, waiting for the promises revealed in it, and passively, enduring all manner of trials and crosses. To keep this word, was to keep close not only to the matters of faith revealed in it, but to the duty imposed by it upon ministers and others in the preaching and propagating of the gospel, and all the duties of a holy life.

I also will keep thee from the hour of temptation, which shall come upon all the world for this faithfulness God promises to keep the ministers of this church from those persecutions which raged elsewhere, and were further, in Trajan’ s time, to come upon all Christians living under the Roman empire.

To try them that dwell upon the earth to try those Christians that lived within that empire, how well they would adhere to Christ, and the profession of the gospel. This I take to be a more proper sense, than theirs who would interpret this hour of temptation of the day of judgment, which is never so called.

Poole: Rev 3:11 - -- Behold, I come quicklytacu , which certainly is the same with en tacei ; and it might be as well concluded, that the day of judgment should come by th...

Behold, I come quicklytacu , which certainly is the same with en tacei ; and it might be as well concluded, that the day of judgment should come by that time Rome pagan should cease, as that all things written in this book had their accomplishment in that time, because Christ told John they should come to pass en tacei , Rev 1:1 22:6 . No other coming of Christ, but his coming to the last judgment, can be here meant.

Hold that fast which thou hastkratei , hold with a strong hand the doctrine of faith, which thou yet hast, pure, and thy pure worship, and discipline, and a pure conscience.

That no man take thy crown that thou mayest not lose that reward which shall be the portion of those that persevere to the end, and of those only.

Poole: Rev 3:12 - -- Him that overcometh will I make a pillar in the temple of my God: though by the temple of God in this place some understand the church of Christ on...

Him that overcometh will I make a pillar in the temple of my God: though by the temple of God in this place some understand the church of Christ on earth, where those always were, and are, and always shall be, most famous, who have overcome temptations best, from the world, the flesh, and the devil; yet, considering that all the promises before made to those who overcome are of another life, it seems best rather to interpret this so, that God would make such a one of fame and renown in heaven, great in the kingdom of heaven, Mat 5:19 , to sit upon a throne there, Mat 19:28 . He shall have a higher degree in glory, (for stars differ from one another in glory, 1Co 15:41 ), pillars being not only for support, but ornament, and principal parts in buildings.

And he shall go no more out he shall have an eternal inheritance, of which he shall not be dispossessed.

And I will write upon him the name of my God as men use, upon pillars and monuments erected for their own use and honour, to write their names; so I will peculiarly own, and challenge such a one for myself.

And the name of the city of my God, which is new Jerusalem and I will write upon him: This man is an inhabitant of the new Jerusalem.

And I will write upon him my new name I will glorify him with that glory of which myself was made partaker, upon my ascension after my resurrection, Joh 17:22,24 .

Poole: Rev 3:13 - -- This we have met with at the close of every epistle: See Poole on "Rev 3:7" . Those who think these churches were typical, and the matter of the e...

This we have met with at the close of every epistle: See Poole on "Rev 3:7" .

Those who think these churches were typical, and the matter of the epistles not only didactic and corrective, but prophetical, say, this church of Philadelphia was a type of all gospel churches which were to be in the world upon the Reformation; which more perfectly cast off antichrist, and would allow no key but that of the house of David, reforming themselves strictly according to the rule of the word, not according to state policy, and prudence.

Poole: Rev 3:14 - -- We read of this church, Col 4:16 . Laodicea was a city in Lydia, by the river Lycus: see Rev 1:11 . These things saith the Amen: Amen, as we hav...

We read of this church, Col 4:16 .

Laodicea was a city in Lydia, by the river Lycus: see Rev 1:11 .

These things saith the Amen: Amen, as we have oft noted, is a particle used in asserting, and in wishing, or praying; here it hath the use of a noun, and is assertive, he that is true, as it followeth. He may be conceived thus to preface his epistle, to ascertain to the ministers of this church the truth of what he blames in them; or of the threatenings or promises contained in it; to which purpose he also calls himself

the faithful and true witness: see the notes on Rev 1:5 .

The beginning of the creation of God: those that deny the Divinity of Christ, are deceived in their thoughts that this text will afford them any defence for their error; for arch , the word here used, doth not only signify the cause, but principality, or the chief, or prince, Eph 3:10 Col 1:16 . Hence Christ is said to be arch , which we translate the beginning, because he was the Creator, the efficient cause of the creation, or hath a lordship over the whole creation; all power both in heaven and earth being committed to him, and all knees both in heaven and earth bowing down to him, Phi 2:10 . Unless we had rather interpret it of the new creation, either in the world, so he was the beginning of the gospel; or in particular souls, so he is the beginning of regeneration and sanctification. But though this be a truth, and consistent enough with the Greek phrase, Gal 6:15 , yet I see no reason why we should fly to it against the Arians, or their spurious offspring; for taking the creation, as ordinarily it signifies, the giving all creatures their first being, Christ was the efficient cause of it, and so the beginning of it, without him was nothing made; and he hath a lordship and dominion over it.

Poole: Rev 3:15 - -- I know thy works I know and observe thy behaviour, thy ministerial function. That thou art neither cold nor hot thou art neither openly profane and...

I know thy works I know and observe thy behaviour, thy ministerial function.

That thou art neither cold nor hot thou art neither openly profane and grossly scandalous, like heathens, or such as make no profession; nor yet hast thou any true zeal or warmth, either for the faith once delivered to the saints, or in love to God, seen in keeping his commandments, having the power and efficacy of godliness, teaching thee to deny all ungodliness and worldly lusts, Tit 2:12 . Thou hast a form of godliness, but deniest the life and power thereof.

I would thou wert cold or hot: we must not think Christ wisheth any persons cold absolutely, but comparatively, intimating to us, that the condition of a downright atheist, or profane person, is more hopeful than that of a close, formal hypocrite: the latter is in the road to hell as well as the other, and no more pleaseth God than the other. It is better not to have known the truth, than knowing it, to live contrary to it, Luk 12:48 2Pe 2:21 . Commonly such men also are proud, and self-conceited, having something to stop the mouth of their natural conscience, harder to be convinced of their evil state, Mat 21:32,33 .

Poole: Rev 3:16 - -- Neither cold nor hot partly good, partly bad, having something of profession, nothing of the life and power of religion; contenting thyself that thou...

Neither cold nor hot partly good, partly bad, having something of profession, nothing of the life and power of religion; contenting thyself that thou art not a Jew, nor a pagan; not a superstitious, idolatrous person; but a Christian, a protestant, a minister, or member of the Reformed church; yet neglecting thy duty both as a minister, and as a Christian, living in a sensual satisfaction of thy lusts.

I will spue thee out of my mouth I will cast thee off, as men vomit up lukewarm things.

Poole: Rev 3:17 - -- Because thou sayest, I am rich: it was said before, that one reason why the condition of a formalist is worse than that of an atheist, or more openly...

Because thou sayest, I am rich: it was said before, that one reason why the condition of a formalist is worse than that of an atheist, or more openly profane person, is, because the former is ordinarily proud and self-conceited, and hath something to stop the mouth of his natural conscience with, which the other wanteth. This is made good in the instance of this lukewarm angel; he said he was rich in a spiritual sense, in his state as a Christian, in spiritual gifts and endowments.

And increased with goods and every day increasing and growing richer.

And have need of nothing and needed nothing to make him happy and blessed.

And knowest not that thou art wretched, and miserable, and poor, and blind, and naked in the mean time he was as miserable as one could be. These words used, are several words signifying persons under various bodily afflictions, and applied to signify this angel’ s forlorn spiritual state, which, in the general, was wretched and miserable, and such as had need of mercy, wanting the true righteousness, wherein any could appear before God not naked, and wanting all true riches; and to complete his misery, he was spiritually blind, and knew not the sad circumstances he was under.

Poole: Rev 3:18 - -- Buying being the usual way amongst men to procure what they want, it is not to be wondered at, that the procuring of that spiritual blessing here me...

Buying being the usual way amongst men to procure what they want, it is not to be wondered at, that the procuring of that spiritual blessing here mentioned is expressed under this notion; though our buying of God spiritual good things be (as the prophet expresseth it, Isa 55:1 ) without money and without price. It is not to be doubted, but that which is here propounded to be bought (that is, obtained, and procured by such ways and means as God hath directed) is Christ himself, with all his benefits, in whom there is a sufficient spiritual supply for all our spiritual wants; that which to the soul will answer whatever gold serveth the body for; and which to the soul answereth what clothing is to the body, viz. righteousness, wherein a soul may stand before God; and that which will answer what salves are to the body for the cure of its wounds, viz. consolation, and healing of all spiritual wounds and infirmities; in short, whatever thou hast need of, considered either as poor, wretched, and miserable, or as blind and naked.

Poole: Rev 3:19 - -- I rebuke and chastenelegcw kai paideuw the words may be translated, I convince and instruct, or deal with them as children; but it also signifies to ...

I rebuke and chastenelegcw kai paideuw the words may be translated, I convince and instruct, or deal with them as children; but it also signifies to chasten, and is so translated, 1Co 11:32 Heb 12:7 ; we translate it learn, 1Ti 1:20 . By these words Christ lets this angel know, that although he had in this epistle dealt smartly with him, yet he had done it from a principle of love, as a father to a child, Heb 12:7 .

Be zealous therefore, and repent he adviseth him therefore to quit himself of his luke warmness, and to recover a warmth and zeal for God, repenting of his former coldness and negligence in his duty.

Poole: Rev 3:20 - -- There is a double interpretation of this text, each of them claiming under very valuable interpreters; some making it a declaration of Christ’ ...

There is a double interpretation of this text, each of them claiming under very valuable interpreters; some making it a declaration of Christ’ s readiness to come in to souls, and to give them a spiritual fellowship and communion with himself; others interpreting it of Christ’ s readiness to come to the last judgment, and to take his saints into an eternal joyful fellowship and communion with himself: hence there is a different interpretation of every sentence in the text.

I stand at the door either, in my gospel dispensations, I stand at the door of sinners’ hearts; or, I am ready to come to judge the world.

And knock by the inward monitions and impressions of my Spirit, or my ministers more externally; or, I am about to knock, that is, I am ready to have the last trump sounded.

If any man hear my voice, and open the door that is, if any man will hearken to the counsels and exhortations of my ministers, and to the monitions of my Spirit, and not resist my Holy Spirit; or, if any man hath heard my voice, and opened his heart to me.

I will come in to him I will come in by my Spirit, and all the saving influences of my grace; or, I will come to him as a Judge to acquit him.

And will sup with him, and he with me and I will have a communion with him in this life, he shall eat my flesh, and drink my blood; or, I will have an eternal fellowship and communion with him in my glory. The phrase seems rather to favour the first sense; the so frequent mention before of Christ’ s coming to judgment, and the reward of another life, as arguments to persuade the angels of the churches to their duty, favours the latter sense.

Poole: Rev 3:21 - -- To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my throne I will give him great honour, dignity, and power; he shall judge the world in the day...

To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my throne I will give him great honour, dignity, and power; he shall judge the world in the day of judgment, 1Co 6:3 , the twelve, tribes of Israel, Mat 19:28 ; he shall be made partaker of my glory, Joh 17:22,24 .

Even as I also overcame, and am set down with my Father in his throne but they must come to my throne as I came to it. I overcame the world, sin, death, the devil, and then ascended, and sat down with my Father in his throne: so they that will sit down with me in my throne of glory, must fight the same fight, and overcome, and then be crowned, sitting with me in my throne.

Poole: Rev 3:22 - -- We have had this in the conclusion of every epistle before: see Rev 2:7,11,17,29 , and in Rev 3:6,13 . Those who make these churches typical of all...

We have had this in the conclusion of every epistle before: see Rev 2:7,11,17,29 , and in Rev 3:6,13 .

Those who make these churches typical of all Christian churches, from the time John had this Revelation, and prophetical of the complexion of the Christian churches in all ages, say, that the church of Laodicea typifieth the churches towards the end of the world till Christ cometh; but this necessitateth them to think there shall be no such pure and glorious state of the church just before the end of the world, as many believe there shall be, but that the state thereof shall grow yet worse and worse, of a Laodicean temper, so as when Christ cometh he shall hardly find faith on the earth.

For my part, I could allow the seven epistles to be typical and prophetical, but can by no means judge them to be purely prophetical; believing there were such churches when John wrote, and that their complexion is in the first place described in these epistles; though possibly, as face answers face in a glass, so succeeding churches have answered, and shall answer, the face of these churches, even to the last day.

This chapter concludes John’ s first vision. In the following chapters we have a representation in visions of what was to happen in the world more remarkably, with reference to the church of God, from the year 95, to the end of the world.

There are very different opinions about the epocha, or the time, when the visions began to be fulfilled. My opinion is, it began soon after John had the vision; for it is twice said, Rev 1:1 22:6 , that the visions were to be about things that shall come to pass, (not that were come to pass), and that shortly; but we cannot fix the certain year, which maketh the interpretation difficult.

There are also divers opinions how far in this book the revelations go that concern the state of the church under Rome pagan, and where they begin that foretell the state of the church under antichrist. But of these we shall speak more particularly as we go along with the several chapters.

PBC: Rev 3:3 - -- Sardis had a goodly foundation. Lydia, the woman who had so wondrously received the things of God from the preaching of Paul at Philippi must have con...

Sardis had a goodly foundation. Lydia, the woman who had so wondrously received the things of God from the preaching of Paul at Philippi must have conveyed to her friends at Sardis (her home) the wonderful experience which she received. They must have had other teaching also and had received that which they had heard. It was the same good tidings of God’s love for His people in giving them life. They had been called out of darkness into His marvelous light in the same way as others of God’s elect. Now the message is " Remember and hold fast, and repent." If not, at such a time as they think not He will come as a thief. Sudden destruction awaits God’s people who allow themselves to be overcome with the cares of this world. They will not know at what hour He will come upon them. Therefore, watch!— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:4 - -- In all places where apathy is the rule among God’s people there are those few who have not defiled their garments with sin and forgetfulness. The wo...

In all places where apathy is the rule among God’s people there are those few who have not defiled their garments with sin and forgetfulness. The word " white" is used in other places describing those who praise and glorify God. " After this I beheld, and, lo, a great multitude, which no man could number, of all nations, and kindreds, and people, and tongues, stood before the throne, and before the Lamb, clothed with white robes, and palms in their hands." {Re 7:9} " And he said to me, These are they which came out of great tribulation, and have washed their robes, and made them white in the blood of the Lamb." {Re 7:14} To these who have kept their garments unspotted from the world, there is great promise. " They shall walk with me in white: for they are worthy."— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:5 - -- These are the same as those referred to in Re 3:4. They have continued fast in their belief that Jesus is the Christ the Son of God. Even though the c...

These are the same as those referred to in Re 3:4. They have continued fast in their belief that Jesus is the Christ the Son of God. Even though the candlestick is removed, these shall be remembered that their names are in the book of life.[1]  They have not been ashamed of Him and He shall not be ashamed of them before the Father while interceding for them at the mediatorial Throne in Heaven.— Eld. Charles Taylor

[1] Then they that feared the LORD spake often one to another: and the LORD hearkened, and heard it, and a book of remembrance was written before him for them that feared the LORD, and that thought upon his name." {Mal 3:16}

PBC: Rev 3:6 - -- Again, the admonition given is to those who have been born of the Spirit of God and have been given Spiritual ears to hear the things of God. They are...

Again, the admonition given is to those who have been born of the Spirit of God and have been given Spiritual ears to hear the things of God. They are to use these ears. Some in Sardis had closed their ears to the things spoken. Others were watching and still walking with Him in white. May we today learn and be admonished fruitfully in these things lest we be found wearing spotted garments.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:7 - -- Letter to the Church at Philadelphia {Re 3:7-13} -Elder Charles Taylor Philadelphia was located approximately twenty-eight miles southeast from Sardi...

Letter to the Church at Philadelphia {Re 3:7-13} -Elder Charles Taylor

Philadelphia was located approximately twenty-eight miles southeast from Sardis in a region noted for agriculture and earthquakes. Earthquakes actually destroyed the city several times, the latest around 37 A. D. Some form of Christian testimony and presence continued into the twentieth century. We find no direct criticism of this church. One wonders at the repeated reference to open and shut doors and the open door set before them. Did they need a nudge to sense the open door of providential opportunity and walk through it? Don’t we all need an occasional nudge to act as faithful witnesses in the dark world around us?

With each letter we have seen unique relevance in the Lord’s self-description to the conditions of the church. We should then expect relevance in this description as well. "Holy and true" establishes the Lord’s authority and ability to judge his churches, Philadelphia included. Every generation of believers seem to face the question of who and what determines truth and holiness, as if no one prior to them ever faced such a question. Will we ever learn? The Lord Jesus Christ remains the unquestioned head of his church. He alone declares his holiness as the model for our personal conduct and for our mission as a church. And he alone declares what is true-and what is truth. Truth never comes up for a popular vote in God’s church. When people lose their vision that God alone is head of the church, exemplifies holiness in conduct and declares truth-is truth—they have lost their vision of the New Testament church. They become a benevolent society, not a bad institution as human institutions go, but they do not have a church. The spiritual health of the Lord’s churches may face greater danger from the self-absorbed me-generation than they ever faced from bloody persecutions in remote history. We live in a culture that boasts its title, the me-generation. Wherever you look, you will find examples of how this, "What’s in it for me?" mindset permeates every area of human activity. Why should we be surprised when we look it squarely in the eye of our members in church on Sunday? They live in it six days of the week. And for many of them it has become a habit, a lifestyle that they bring with them into church. God declares what is holy and what is sin? God declares what is true and what is error? Who does he think he is anyway-God? Yes! He is God! That is the point!

It is more vital than ever for authentic Christians to live out Biblical Christ-centric faith in their lives. Whenever a me-generation person objects that all Christians are self-centered, prove them wrong by selfless living on the job, in the neighborhood and in your family.

The me-generation Christian devalues Scripture. Somewhere in the past it was the Word of God, but translations and interpretations have obscured its true meaning. Today meaning resides in the eye and heart of the believer. So, if your interpretation comes up with one truth, with one standard for holiness, and mine comes up with another, neither is absolutely right. No one can possibly approach absolute truth, if there is such a thing. Therefore my interpretation is just as good as yours because no one can really understand the Bible anyway. What is wrong with this reaction? Don’t you see it? Authority has been removed from Scripture and deposited in each person’s esoteric perspective. Meaning that resides in the passage and communicates its truth alike to all has been denied. Meaning no longer resides in the passage at all but in each believer’s private opinion! This self-centric religion has in large part replaced the God-centric revelation of Scripture for Western Christianity. And we wonder why we cannot impact the world around us! How could it be otherwise?

This generation has rejected the existence of a holy and true God in favor of private interpretations and esoteric meaning whose authority resides in the sentimentality of each believer’s private views. From their perspective it is preferable to reject God and retain personal control than to submit self to God and the clear authority of Scripture as it reflects God’s dazzling holiness and undeniable truth. True religion for the Western mind today resides in feelings and emotional impressions, not in Scripture and the revealed holiness of God. Whether we agree with the Christian influence in Philadelphia today or not, it has survived across the centuries in this city. Given the self-centricity of our religion today, can we offer anyone the slightest assurance that our church will survive into the next generation, much less for centuries to come? Would we like such an assurance? If so, are we willing to pay the price it requires? That price takes self and personal, emotional, sentimental feelings out of the controlling power over our faith and reinstalls the Lord Jesus Christ alone as head of his church. We joyfully submit to Scripture and to each other in the fear of God to demonstrate our supreme loyalty to Christ. And we live consistently with this authority model in every aspect of our existence. That is the price we pay to purchase the true Christian witness for the next generation! We can no longer cast ourselves in the role of judging Christ. If we hope to survive, we must submit to him and acknowledge his sovereign and communicable holiness and truth to his people. Instead of championing the inscrutable mystery and confusion of Scripture, we must become champions in our theology and our lifestyle of the clear revelation of Scripture and of the God of Scripture. This requires submitting every theological point we believe and every life-choice and action we take to the sovereign lordship of Christ as clearly revealed in Scripture. Will we pay the price? The next generation will testify to our answer!

Elder Joe Holder

Philadelphia, a Lydian city founded by Attalus II Philadelphus (159-138B.C.). The king was so named from his devotion to his brother Eumenes, and the city perpetuated his title. Philadelphia was an outpost of Hellenism in native Anatolia. It lies under Mount Tmolus, in a wide vale which opens into the Hermus Valley, and along which the postroad ran. It is on a broad, low, easily defended hill, which explains Philadelphia’s long stand against the Turks. The district is disastrously seismic, and the great earthquake of A.D. 17 ruined it completely. Placed right above the fault, Philadelphia was tormented by 20 years of recurrent quakes after the disaster of A.D. 17. The district was vine-growing, and a center in consequence, of Dionysaic worship. A Christian witness, in spite of Moslem invasion and pressure, was maintained in Philadelphia through medieval and into modern times.— Eld. Charles Taylor

The word Philadelphia as used in other places in Scripture mean the city of brotherly love. Peter uses this meaning in Ro 12:10 as affectionate love as toward one’s kindred.

The Apostle Paul uses two words: "But as touching brotherly love ye need not that I write unto you: for ye yourselves are taught of God to love one another." {1Th 4:9} He uses brotherly love in the same sense as does Peter. He goes a bit further using the word yeodidaktov, theh-od-id’-ak-tos; which means divinely instructed: taught of God. In Heb 13:1, the writer uses Philadelphia (fraternal love) "Let brotherly love continue." There is one other interesting usage in 2Pe 1:7 "And to godliness brotherly kindness; and to brotherly kindness charity." The word used for godliness is eusebeia, yoo-seb’-I-ah; and means according to the gospel scheme: godliness, holiness.

These Greek meanings as used in Scripture add strength to the statement in the remainder of Re 3:7 "These things saith he that is holy, he that is true, he that hath the key of David, he that openeth, and no man shutteth; and shutteth, and no man openeth;" He who sits upon the throne has the only key which will preserve this great love as a strength to all people of God.

Elder Charles Taylor

He that hath the key of David, he that openeth, and no man shutteth; and shutteth, and no man openeth.

The key of David apparently refers to Isa 22:22 where God planted the key of David with Eliakim, along with all the riches and privileges of the house of David. We already saw Christ with the keys of death and hell. {Re 1:18} This reference seems more appropriate to spiritual treasures than to the natural treasures of David’s national throne or of death and hell. Who has the power and the authority to open and to shut? Who presents opportunities before one group of believers and shuts another group out from the open door? Does he open and shut doors capriciously based on his mood at the moment or on some other mystical and inscrutable reason? Or does he open and shut doors based on his sovereign will and based on his omniscience, thus knowing that one group or person will accept the door of opportunity and bless others with it while he equally knows the selfish hearts of the other group, that they would not bless others with their open door? You see, God’s sovereignty does not mean that he is capricious or unpredictable. It means that he makes the final decision and that he has the power to bring it to pass. Nothing in his sovereignty compromises his holiness or any other essential trait in his divine attributes. The sentimental mystical view of New Age Christianity makes God’s emotions as unpredictable and as fickle as we have allowed our own emotions to become. We make a god who looks and acts exactly as we. Such a god is too insignificant to be the God of the Bible or the God of historical Christianity. Will we perpetuate this idolatrous submission to our private god or will we return to the God of Scripture and to the Scripture of God? How will we know the answer? Look at doors around you! Are they opened or closed?

Elder Joe Holder

PBC: Rev 3:8 - -- With an open door, even a little strength will prevail to go in and out. God, who is omnipotent, keeps this door against the winds of adversity. Keepi...

With an open door, even a little strength will prevail to go in and out. God, who is omnipotent, keeps this door against the winds of adversity. Keeping the word of God is essential to the safety He provides. Thou hast not denied my name. We are aware of the words of Jesus; " But whosoever shall deny me before men, him will I also deny before my Father which is in heaven."{Mt 10:33} There are many times when we approach our High Priest, Jesus Christ, with petitions which are very important to us when He remains silent. These may be times that our testimony for Him has been silent. It is very important that we own Him as our God and Saviour. He sits making intercession for us to the Father. What would our action be toward a friend if they had denied us before others? Jesus keeps this door open to those who have maintained a godly (eusebia) life as we walk here on earth.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:9 - -- Again we find some mentioned who are called them of the synagogue of Satan. We found this mentioned in Re 2:9, " I know thy works, and tribulation, an...

Again we find some mentioned who are called them of the synagogue of Satan. We found this mentioned in Re 2:9, " I know thy works, and tribulation, and poverty, (but thou art rich) and I know the blasphemy of them which say they are Jews, and are not, but are the synagogue of Satan." Evidently these people were striving for the good will of the Romans. They were actually anti-christ in their persecutions of the sect who worshiped according to godliness. Paul mentioned the anti-christ as being present during his day. John must have also experienced this movement. Jesus gave great consolation in the words " behold, I will make them to come and worship before thy feet, and to know that I have loved thee." The Church at Philadelphia would be exalted in due time. " Thou preparest a table before me in the presence of mine enemies: thou anointest my head with oil; my cup runneth over." {Ps 23:5}— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:10 - -- What a wonderful promise is given to these brethren (and us) because of the keeping of His words in the hour of temptation (trial, provocation, advers...

What a wonderful promise is given to these brethren (and us) because of the keeping of His words in the hour of temptation (trial, provocation, adversity) which shall come to them that dwell upon all the earth.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:11 - -- The hour will come quickly when they must withstand trials and tribulation. When that hour comes, He who walks among the candlesticks will fight for t...

The hour will come quickly when they must withstand trials and tribulation. When that hour comes, He who walks among the candlesticks will fight for them. The open door which is set will be entered into by those who have a little strength. That little bit is enough! Hold it fast! Defend the crown which is yours against false teaching by false prophets. The time is at hand. They were encouraged by knowing the battle was not theirs. It was the Lord’s battle and He would fight for them.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:12 - -- " Who is he that overcometh the world, but he that believeth that Jesus is the Son of God?" {1Jo 5:5} He that sits as King upon the throne of His ki...

" Who is he that overcometh the world, but he that believeth that Jesus is the Son of God?" {1Jo 5:5} He that sits as King upon the throne of His kingdom is the strength of those who are believers, the children of Abraham by faith. He never leaves us or forsakes us. He is Omnipresent! Paul wrote to the young man Timothy, " Which in his times he shall show, who is the blessed and only Potentate, the King of kings, and Lord of lords." {1Ti 6:15} We view Him in Re 19:16, " And he hath on his vesture and on his thigh a name written, KING OF KINGS, AND LORD OF LORDS." This One has overcome for us! He has been made a Pillar in the house of our God and in the city of our God. We being " in Him" are also pillars (supports) in this great city of our God. This city is not the " Old Jerusalem, " but it is called the " New Jerusalem." Those who dwell in the " New Jerusalem" have also a " New Name." They do not have the circumcision in the flesh made by hands; they have that circumcision which is of heart. " Surely goodness and mercy shall follow me all the days of my life: and I will dwell in the house of the LORD for ever." {Ps 23:6} It has been said truthfully that those who are faithful in the church are the supports of the church. Those who wander in and out cannot be depended upon to hold up the cause of Christ when the test comes.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:13 - -- May spiritual ears ever be turned toward Him who walks among the candlesticks. In the epistle of James we are told, " But be ye doers of the word, and...

May spiritual ears ever be turned toward Him who walks among the candlesticks. In the epistle of James we are told, " But be ye doers of the word, and not hearers only, deceiving your own selves. For if any be a hearer of the word, and not a doer, he is like unto a man beholding his natural face in a glass: For he beholdeth himself, and goeth his way, and straightway forgetteth what manner of man he was. But whoso looketh into the perfect law of liberty, and continueth therein, he being not a forgetful hearer, but a doer of the work, this man shall be blessed in his deed." {Jas 1:22-25} The church at Philadelphia was encouraged because their works had strengthened their spiritual muscles.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:14 - --  Letter to Laodicea Re 3:14-22 14  And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write; These things saith the Amen, the faithful and true wi...

 Letter to Laodicea

Re 3:14-22

14  And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write; These things saith the Amen, the faithful and true witness, the beginning of the creation of God;

15  I know thy works, that thou art neither cold nor hot: I would thou wert cold or hot.

16  So then because thou art lukewarm, and neither cold nor hot, I will spue thee out of my mouth.

17  Because thou sayest, I am rich, and increased with goods, and have need of nothing; and knowest not that thou art wretched, and miserable, and poor, and blind, and naked:

18  I counsel thee to buy of me gold tried in the fire, that thou mayest be rich; and white raiment, that thou mayest be clothed, and that the shame of thy nakedness do not appear; and anoint thine eyes with eyesalve, that thou mayest see.

19  As many as I love, I rebuke and chasten: be zealous therefore, and repent.

20  Behold, I stand at the door, and knock: if any man hear my voice, and open the door, I will come in to him, and will sup with him, and he with me.

21  To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my throne, even as I also overcame, and am set down with my Father in his throne.

22  He that hath an ear, let him hear what the Spirit saith unto the churches.

Laodicea lay on one of the great Asian trade routes, and was the head of the Circuit of the Seven Churches of Asia Minor. Laodicea was founded by Antiochus II (261-246 B.C.). She was a leading banking center and this brought great commercial prosperity. In 51 B.C. Cicero, en route for his Cilician province, cashed drafts there. It said the rich banking firms which financed the reconstruction of the city after the great earthquake in A.D. 60 which prostrated it. She was " rich and increased with goods and had need of nothing." {Re 3:17} The Lycus valley produced a glossy black wool, the source of black cloaks and carpets, for which the city was famous.

Laodicea was also the home of a medical school, and the manufacture of collyrium, a famous eye salve. The scornful imagery of the apocalyptic letter to Laodicea is obviously based on these activities. It also has reference to the emetic qualities of the soda-laden warm water from nearby Hierapolis, whose thermal springs ran into the Maeander. Laodicea’s water supply also came from Hierapolis. Sir William Ramsay observes that the city is vunerable due to its position and its easy wealth. This caused the growth in the community of that spirit of compromise and worldly-mindedness which is rebuked in Revelation. Laodicea, still prosperous was made the chief city of the Province of Phrygia under Diocletian.[1] Laodicea is described by one writer as the worst of the Seven Churches.[2] —Eld. Charles Taylor

Re 3:14 And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write; These things saith the Amen, the faithful and true witness, the beginning of the creation of God;

Authority for the proclamation to follow is pronounced in the very beginning of this admonition (warning). The source of authority is identified as that Power which created the universe with all of its splendor: The amen, firm, i.e., (figuratively) trustworthy; adv. surely, so be it:—amen, verily. None can change the determinate counsel of God.— Eld. Charles Taylor

[1] Zondervan Pictorial Bible Dictionary

[2] Some commentators believe these " Seven Churches" represent the Church in different ages. However, it is my belief that the apocalyptic type shows forth error which could infest any church, and which should continually be " watched" to keep them from becoming rampant in the body.

PBC: Rev 3:15 - -- Their condition was described as putrid, and distasteful, with sin-infested works which God cannot tolerate. He will not be persuaded to alter His ete...

Their condition was described as putrid, and distasteful, with sin-infested works which God cannot tolerate. He will not be persuaded to alter His eternal decrees. The works of the Laodiceans are manifest by their condition. All of the in between conditions are deceiving. Cold conditions are easily detected. So are hot conditions. Lukewarm conditions in God’s people will lead others astray. The one who has set His counsel in the highest determinate cannot tolerate this.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:16 - -- "I will spue" [1] As the footnote indicates, there is such a sickening condition in the Church that vomiting takes place. When something is taken int...

"I will spue" [1]

As the footnote indicates, there is such a sickening condition in the Church that vomiting takes place. When something is taken into the mouth for taste, it consists of a body, or mass. Whether liquid or otherwise it is more or less compacted. But if it is spued out, it becomes misted, or broken up- no longer a compact body. There is no strength because of the divided condition. When the works of God’s people are rejected (spued out) by Him, they are no longer of any strength. They appear as a mist which soon becomes unseen by even the worldly element which might accept the works of a compact body of people. Their works are useless. This lukewarm condition soon becomes extinct to all who follow. Their light is no longer seen!— Eld. Charles Taylor

[1] emeo, em-eh’-o; emew (SGreek: 1692. emeo) of uncert. affin.; to vomit—(will) spue.

PBC: Rev 3:17 - -- Riches may suffice in time of natural catastrophes such as the great earthquake which struck this city. Buildings may be rebuilt and damage repaired, ...

Riches may suffice in time of natural catastrophes such as the great earthquake which struck this city. Buildings may be rebuilt and damage repaired, yet there are other things riches cannot buy. Because the church at Laodicea had become so embedded in the riches of the city, they evidently considered themselves able to overcome all things with their possessions. Spirituality mixed with the pleasures of the world will soon become distasteful to God. There is a great danger when the body of God’s people get entangled in conditions such as these. When our goods become our dependence, we are wretched, and miserable, and poor, and blind, and naked. It is not until we find the need to approach the Throne of Grace that we realize our terrible condition. Evidently the church at Laodicia was close to passing the last visible landmark. That landmark spoke to them with Godly counsel.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:18 - -- This gold tried (purified) in the fire is not like their worldly riches. " And he shall sit as a refiner and purifier of silver: and he shall purify...

This gold tried (purified) in the fire is not like their worldly riches.

" And he shall sit as a refiner and purifier of silver: and he shall purify the sons of Levi, and purge them as gold and silver, that they may offer unto the LORD an offering in righteousness. Then shall the offering of Judah and Jerusalem be pleasant unto the LORD, as in the days of old, and as in former years." {Mal 3:3-4} The offerings of Laodicea are tainted with greed and full of impurities. The Refiner has carefully tended the fires so the gold has been pulled from the flame when the impurities have been burned. The tainted riches of the Laodicians must be sold (purged) and replaced with the fine gold which is righteousness, peace, and joy in the Holy Ghost. Their raiment has become dirty from dragging in the worldly dredging which their tainted gold has bought. Their nakedness is visible to all who will be Godly, but they are blinded and cannot see afar off. They have forgotten that the blood of the Lamb has purged them from their old sinfulness. Their eyesalve will not cure this blinded condition. Their eyes have need of being anointed with the eyesalve which only Christ provides. Not only do they need the touch of Jesus: they need the clay {See Joh 9:1-7} made spittle which will cause them to see all things clearly. Men will only see things clearly when they see their nakedness, which sin has caused in their lives.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:19 - -- Repentance is a fruit of the Spirit. The Spirit of God is given only to those whom He loves. These are the same ones whom Christ is rebuking and chast...

Repentance is a fruit of the Spirit. The Spirit of God is given only to those whom He loves. These are the same ones whom Christ is rebuking and chastening. The remainder of the message on that last visible landmark (sign) calls for repentance in the lives of the church at Laodicea. Not just a paltry repentance! But repentance with zeal. Possibly the same degree of zeal they used in obtaining the riches of the world. However, the zeal which is now required must be well tempered with righteousness. Only the love of a father requires such a stringent degree of repentance. " As many as I love" Special repentance is coupled with special love. " If ye endure chastening, God dealeth with you as with sons; for what son is he whom the father chasteneth not?" {Heb 12:7} —Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:20 - -- Here is a clear-cut passage which presents Christ as one who is asking entrance. It is also one of the most misrepresented passages we hear being ofte...

Here is a clear-cut passage which presents Christ as one who is asking entrance. It is also one of the most misrepresented passages we hear being often presented in preaching. We need to apply this in a proper contextual application. It is coupled with the message of Re 3:19, " As many as I love, I rebuke and chasten:..." We often hear it explained as if Christ is knocking at the door of the dead sinner seeking his consent in eternal salvation. One who has not already been born of the Spirit of God cannot hear because of being in a dead state of sin. Reason teaches us that only those ears which are spiritually alive can hear this One who is asking entrance. " He that hath an ear, let him hear what the Spirit saith unto the churches."

Here is a church which is capable of hearing because it is spoken of as once being lively. Its members are admonished to repent. I believe that a man has an option to act only within the scope of his position. The Apostle Paul writes concerning the sins of the children of Israel committed in the wilderness. " Now all these things happened unto them for ensamples: and they are written for our admonition, upon whom the ends of the world are come." {1Co 10:11} The children of Israel had an option of will. They chose the wrong option and did not enter the land of promise. Jesus is on the outside knocking to one occupying the room inside who is capable of hearing. The church at Loadicea had a choice to make. They could open and again sup with Him; or, they could ignore the knocking and perish from hunger. Not only is the summon " if any man hear my voice, " but also " if any man hear my voice, and open the door."

We hear much said about " freedom of the will." Let us turn to God’s word and recognize that freedom in the exercise of the will belongs to God’s people. But God requires His people to act with caution. This was the case with Ananias and Saphira when they covertly agreed to lie concerning the value of the gift they were going to present to the apostles. " Whiles it remained, was it not thine own? and after it was sold, was it not in thine own power? why hast thou conceived this thing in thine heart? thou hast not lied unto men, but unto God." {Ac 5:4} Because they exercised free will in offering only a part of their gift, along with lying deceit, their lives were taken. We find another clear-cut example in the Old Testament. " Thus saith the LORD, Stand ye in the ways, and see, and ask for the old paths, where is the good way, and walk therein, and ye shall find rest for your souls. But they said, We will not walk therein. Also I set watchmen over you, saying, Hearken to the sound of the trumpet. But they said, We will not hearken." {Jer 6:16-17} Because of their obstinacy they were placed in captivity, and they suffered because they heard and would not open to the bidding of God. The option is not just hearing- it is also if they open. There is a great danger in wrongly exercising freedom of will. O what a joy it is when we are in the company of our Saviour while eating.— Eld. Charles Taylor

PBC: Rev 3:21 - -- " Who is he that overcometh the world, but he that believeth that Jesus is the Son of God?" {1Jo 5:5} Faith is that which giveth the victory. The red...

" Who is he that overcometh the world, but he that believeth that Jesus is the Son of God?" {1Jo 5:5} Faith is that which giveth the victory. The redeemed of God can be victorious by exercising that measure of faith which is given them in Christ Jesus our Lord. It is Christ that overcame for us. As He was obedient to the work given Him by the Father, so must we be obedient to that which is committed to our trust. Then, as He has sat down in His Father’s kingdom, so can we sit with Him in His kingdom here in the earth.— Eld. Charles Taylor

Haydock: Rev 3:1-6 - -- To the Angel of the church of Sardis . He begins with a severe reprehension, thou hast the name of being alive, and thou art dead, which we may unde...

To the Angel of the church of Sardis . He begins with a severe reprehension, thou hast the name of being alive, and thou art dead, which we may understand of the greatest part of them, and of being dead by the worst of deaths, which is that of sin. (Witham) ---

In the style of the sacred writers, to live, is to be in the state of grace, and to bring forth good works; as, to be dead, is to live in sin, and the neglect of Christian duties. (Calmet) ---

Here we see that the opinion of men is no advantage to us, when our internal dispositions are not correspondent to our external appearance. For what we are in thy sight, O Lord, so much we are, and no more, says St. Augustine. ---

The bishop is charged with this fault, that he did not watch and take care of his flock. He is admonished to repent, and to strengthen those that were not dead, but ready to die. [1] (Witham) ---

God does not seek to surprise us and lay snares for us. But when he tells us that he will come like a thief, it is only to admonish us not to slumber. Had he wished to take us unawares, he never would have admonished us beforehand. (Calmet) ---

But thou hast a few names, &c. That is, a few persons not yet defiled, neither as to their consciences, souls, nor bodies. ---

They shall walk with me in white apparel, &c. It is a new way of expressing the happiness of heaven. (Witham) ---

White is the color of joy, festivity, and triumph. The Angels always appear clothed in white. (Calmet)

Haydock: Rev 3:7-13 - -- To the Angel of the church of Philadelphia. There were several towns of this name; here is understood that which was near Sardis, in Lydia. Here is...

To the Angel of the church of Philadelphia. There were several towns of this name; here is understood that which was near Sardis, in Lydia. Here is no more than an admonition to persevere, to hold that which thou hast. Christ takes the title of the Holy One, and True One, who hath the key of David; i.e. being the son of David, and the promised Messias, hath the supreme power in the Church: who opens the gate of salvation, and no one shuts it against his elect. (Witham) ---

By the key in this place may be understood either the key of the Church, or of the kingdom of heaven. Jesus Christ has both, he opens and shuts the heavens by his infinite power. But in the Church on earth he has entrusted this key (his power) to his apostles and ministers; whatever is bound or loosened by them is ratified by him in the kingdom of his glory. (Calmet) ---

I have set before thee a door open, by giving thee graces to save thee, which no one shall be able to hinder, because thou hast of thyself little power or strength,[2] and hast kept my word, and not denied the faith. (Witham) ---

I have sent you to preach, and have given my blessing to your labours. You shall, notwithstanding all your adversaries, eventually succeed. St. Paul makes use of the same manner of expression (1 Corinthians xvi.) I see a great door is open to me, and at the same time many adversaries; and again, 2 Corinthians ii. and Colossians iv. On account of your little strength, your want of talents, eloquence, supernatural gifts, &c. I have not exposed you to great trial. Thus does the Almighty always proportion the trials he sends, and the temptations he permits in his servants, to the graces and strength he has given them. ---

Those who were neither Jews nor Christians, shall come and abjure at your feet their former errors, and shall evidently perceive that you are strengthened by me. (Calmet) ---

Christ also promises that he will make the false abandoned Jews subject to the bishop and his Church, and to won them to be the beloved and chosen people. God promises to preserve them in the hour or time of temptation and persecutions, which should happen to all the inhabitants of the earth. (Witham) ---

He here advertises him of the persecution which was about to take place, and by which he would try the fidelity of his servants. In ver. 12. he relates the triumph and everlasting beatitude of the martyrs. ---

He that overcomes, I will make him a pillar, &c. so as to stand firm against his enemies, and to be secure of his endless happiness. ---

I will write upon him the name of my God, a subscribed citizen of the celestial Jerusalem, with the new name of Jesus, the Saviour and Redeemer of mankind. He alludes to the custom of writing names upon pillars, palaces, &c. ---

From the words my God, the Socinians pretend that Christ is not the true God, as we may find in the disputes which Servetus had with Calvin. Calvin answered the Socinians, as all Catholics do, that Christ was both God and man: this and divers things were spoken of Christ as he was a man, but that many things in the Scriptures could not apply to him, unless he was also truly God. And by such places is clearly confuted the blasphemy and error of the Arians and Socinians. The argument concludes in the principles of the Catholics, who allow the authority of the Church in expounding the sense of the Scriptures; but the Calvinists, and all other pretended reformers, having shaken off that authority, and having allowed that the holy Scriptures are to be interpreted according to every man's private judgment or spirit, this set Calvin and Servetus, every Calvinist and Socinians, upon the same level. (Witham)

Haydock: Rev 3:8 - -- [BIBLIOGRAPHY] Virtutem, Greek: dunamin, strength.

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Virtutem, Greek: dunamin, strength.

Haydock: Rev 3:14-22 - -- The seventh and last letter is to the Angel of the Church of Laodicia. Christ here takes the title of the Amen, [3] as if he said, I am the Truth....

The seventh and last letter is to the Angel of the Church of Laodicia. Christ here takes the title of the Amen, [3] as if he said, I am the Truth. ---

The beginning of the creation, or of the creatures of God, to which is added, in the first chapter, the beginning and the end. ---

Thou art neither cold nor hot, but lukewarm. A dreadful reprehension, whatever exposition we follow. According to the common interpretation, by the cold are meant those who are guilty of great sins; by the hot, such as are zealous and fervent in piety and the service of God; by the lukewarm or tepid, they who are slothful, negligent, indolent, as to what regards Christian perfection, the practice of virtue, and an exact observance of what regards the service of God. On this account they are many times guilty in the sight of God of great sins, they forfeit the favour and grace of God, fancying themselves good enough and safe, because they live as others commonly do, and are not guilty of many scandalous and shameful crimes, to which they see others addicted. ---

I would thou wert either cold or hot . This is not an absolute wish, because the condition of the cold is certainly worse in itself; but it is to be taken with the regard to the different consequences, which oftentimes attend these two states, and to signify to us that the lukewarm may be farther from a true conversion, inasmuch as they are less sensible of the dangers to which they remain exposed, than such as commit greater sins. Their careless indevotion becomes habitual to them, they live and die with a heart divided betwixt God and the world; whereas greater and more shameful sinners are not without an abhorrence of such vices which they commit; a fear of punishment, of hell and damnation, strikes them by the mercies of God offered even to sinners, and makes them enter into themselves like the prodigal son; they detest their past lives, and by the assistance of God's graces become both fervent and constant in the duties of a Christian life. (Witham) ---

Tepidity in a Christian life, and in the service of God, is oftentimes more dangerous than absolute wickedness. The open sinner is easily made sensible of his danger; he experiences the stings and reproaches of conscience, whilst the tepid Christian lives without remorse, fear, or apprehension, and listens not to those who wish to shew him the danger of his situation. I dare venture to affirm, says St. Augustine, that to fall into some public and manifest sin would be of advantage to the proud, that so those who by their self-complacency had so often fallen before, may now become displeased with themselves and humble. (Calmet) ---

To the lukewarm it is said, I will begin to vomit thee out of my mouth; i.e. if thou continue in that state, I will permit thee to run on and be lost in thy sins. Thou blindly sayest within thyself, I am rich, &c. A false conscience generally attends a lukewarm soul and those who serve God by halves; they flatter themselves that all goes well even with them, when they see they are not so vicious, as many others: but here the spirit of God, who penetrates the secret folds and windings of slothful souls, admonisheth them of their dangerous mistakes, that they are wretched, poor, blind, and naked, when God, by his grace, does not inhabit their souls, though they may have millions of gold and silver in this world. I counsel thee to buy of me gold tried in the fire, the love of God purified by trials and troubles in this life, to recover thy lost innocence, to be clothed with the habit of grace, to anoint thy eyes with eye-salve , by a serious reflection on what regards thy eternal salvation. ---

I chastise those whom I love. He concludes all the former admonitions by telling them: first, that to be under trials and troubles, is a mark of God's favour and his paternal care; secondly, to hearken to the voice of God, when he knocks at the door of their heart; and thirdly, he promises them the reward of eternal happiness ---

he that overcomes, shall sit with me on my throne : though this does not imply an equality of happiness, not even to all the saints, much less with God himself, but only that the elect shall be in the throne as it were of heaven, and partakers of heavenly happiness according to their past good works. ---

I should not here mention the wild and ridiculous fancies of one Mr. Brightman, when he pretends to expound to all men these letters to the seven bishops of Asia [Asia Minor], were it not to shew how the obscure predictions of St. John's revelation have been turned and abused by the loose interpretations of some of the late reformers, as may be seen more at large, when we mention their arbitrary fancies about the whore of Babylon and the popish antichrist. I shall here with Dr. Hammond, give the reader a taste of such licentious expositions of the divine oracles. The Calvinists, Mr. Brightman, pretended he had his expositions by divine inspirations, and so gave his commentary the title of Revelation of the Revelation. I shall his words out of Dr. Hammond. "Mr. Brightman assures his readers, that by the churches of Sardis, Philadelphia, and Laodicia, were meant Germany, France, and Britain. He says a most heavy trial was now suddenly to invade the Christian world....that the three said churches were most favourably admonished of this tempest by the epistles written to them by name, nomination.... that he found and understood this to be so by divine inspiration, from the inscriptions of these letters, and so should be guilty of a sin against the Divine Majesty, if he concealed them." Not to tire the reader with his fancies about Ephesus and Pergamus, which may be seen in Dr. Hammond. Rev. ii. 13. "on those words, in those days was Antipas, &c. Mr. Brightman has this wanton fancy on the name Antipas, that it doth denote that the martyrs of his time (which was after Luther) should be antipapæ, or antipopes;" i.e. adversaries to the popes and popery. Dr. Hammond (p. 928) gives us Mr. Brightman's conceit on the name Thyatria, which must be taken for the same as Thygatheira, signifying a young daughter, and so denotes the growth of piety in the Church from the year 1300, from Wycliffe's time to 1520, that is, till it came to perfection in Luther's days. Page 932. note a, " Sardis, according to Mr. Brightman," says Dr. Hammond, "is the first reformed church in the antitype, to wit, that of Germany, which began at Wittenburg, by Luther, in the year 1517. And the proof is, that Sardis is more to the south than Thyatria, and so must have more of the truth in it; or, because there is no mention made of Balaam and Jezabel, which he resolved must signify the doctrines of Christian Rome, the absence of which must signify a breaking off from the Romish communion; or, that she (the German Church) had a name to be living, but was dead, by the doctrine of consubstantiation among the Lutherans, even after the reformation. This," says Dr. Hammond, "were a strange way of interpreting dreams, which no oneirocritic would allow, but a much stranger of explaining prophecies." Page 933, " Philadelphia, says Mr. Brightman, must needs be the Helvetian, Swedish, Genevan, French, Dutch, and Scotch reformed Churches. No reason again for it, but that the city of Philadelphia was yet farther south than Sardis, and so must needs signify more increase of reformation; 2. that the name of Jezabel was not to any but this pattern of all piety (to which Mr. Brightman had so much kindness) the Church of Helvetia and Geneva. And the reformed Church of England must be that of Laodicia, ....because episcopacy was here retained, and so a mixture of cold with that of heat, and consequently is the lukewarm Church that is found fault with." O the profound interpretations and bright inventions of Mr. Brightman! (Witham)

Haydock: Rev 3:14 - -- [BIBLIOGRAPHY] Hæc dicet Amen; Greek: tade legei o Amen. Ille qui est Amen. ====================

[BIBLIOGRAPHY]

Hæc dicet Amen; Greek: tade legei o Amen. Ille qui est Amen.

====================

Gill: Rev 3:3 - -- Remember, therefore, how thou hast received and heard,.... That is, hast received upon hearing; for hearing goes first, and then receiving: the design...

Remember, therefore, how thou hast received and heard,.... That is, hast received upon hearing; for hearing goes first, and then receiving: the design of the advice is to put this church in mind of the doctrines of grace she had heard at the beginning of the Reformation, from Luther and others; such as justification by the righteousness of Christ, pardon through his blood, and atonement by his sacrifice, doctrines now almost lost and buried in forgetfulness; wherefore Christ would have her remember these things; how that she heard them with attention, reverence, humility, and without prejudice; and with much affection, so as to approve and love them, believe them, feel the power of them, and taste the goodness in them; and how she received them with all meekness, readiness, and joy, when now they are greatly disliked and rejected by many; very few attend to the doctrines of the Reformation. This is exactly our case:

and hold fast; the above doctrines, though the majority is against them, and learned men despise them, and they are charged with enthusiasm and licentiousness. It looks as if there was danger, as there is, that they would be entirely wrested out of her hands:

and repent: of her deadness, coldness, and indifference to these truths; of her unwatchfulness over them, and imperfection in them; not carrying truth to its fulness and perfection, resting in her first light and knowledge, and even going back from that:

if therefore thou shalt not watch: and preserve truth, and hold fast the form of sound words, and keep to the order, as well as the faith of the Gospel, and constantly attend divine worship, and look for the coming and kingdom of Christ:

I will come on thee as a thief; in the night, and at unawares, unthought of, and unexpected; which must be understood of coming to her in a way of rebuke and chastisement, by bringing some affliction, or suffering some sore distress to fall upon her: the phrase, "on thee", is left out in the Alexandrian copy and in the Ethiopic version:

and thou shalt not know what hour I will come upon thee: which, though applicable to the spiritual coming of Christ in the next church state, and to his second coming in his kingdom and glory, which will be both sudden and unexpected, yet these will be to the joy and comfort of the church; whereas what is here spoken is by way of threatening, and must relate to some severe dispensation on her; and which we might now justly expect, were we not in the unwatchful, unthoughtful, and ignorant situation here described.

Gill: Rev 3:4 - -- Thou hast a few names even in Sardis,.... The Alexandrian copy and others, the Complutensian edition, the Vulgate Latin, and all the Oriental versions...

Thou hast a few names even in Sardis,.... The Alexandrian copy and others, the Complutensian edition, the Vulgate Latin, and all the Oriental versions, read, "but thou hast a few names", &c. or "a few men", as the Ethiopic version renders it; who were called by name, and were men of renown, excellent men, men famous for holding the truth of doctrine, and for powerful and practical godliness; men of great light and grace, and who were known by name to God and Christ: these are said to be but "few", not in comparison of the world, in which sense all the elect of God are but few, though a large number, considered in themselves; but in comparison of formal lifeless professors of religion, with which this church state abounds; and which, if we were not as dead as we are, might easily be observed; there may not only be hypocrites in churches, but a majority of them: yea, these few may be understood in comparison of the greater number of true believers; for in this period of the church there are but few, even of them, that are lively, zealous, and careful, and are heartily concerned for the purity of doctrine, discipline, worship, and conversation; and a few there are, blessed be God, even in this our Sardian church state. God will have a few in whom he will be glorified in the most declining times; and the Lord knows and takes notice of these few; and for their sake the church state is kept up, the Gospel and its ordinances are continued; nor is a church to be judged of by the number of its members, nor is a multitude to be followed to do evil,

Which have not defiled their garments; the Ethiopic version adds, "with a woman", the woman Jezebel. They were not guilty either of corporeal or spiritual fornication, which is idolatry; they kept their outward conversation garments pure, and maintained a profession of Christ and his truths incorrupt; they did not defile it by an unbecoming walk, or by a denial of Christ and a departure from him, and by embracing false doctrines; they were neither erroneous in their principles, nor immoral in their practices; few there, are indeed of this sort. Defiled garments, in either sense, very ill become members of the reformed churches. Among the Jews i, if a priest's garments were spotted or defiled, he might not minister; if he did, his service was rejected,

And they shall walk with me in white; there is a walking in Christ by faith; and a walking before him as in his sight; and a walking worthy of him, in all well pleasing in his ways and ordinances; and here a walking with him, in a way of special and comfortable communion, both here and hereafter: and this is in white; in white raiment, meaning either in the robe of his own righteousness, compared to fine linen and white; or in the shining robes of immortality and glory; and may be expressive of that spiritual joy which such shall be partakers of, as well as of their spotless purity and innocence in the other world. White raiment was used among the Romans as a token of joy at festivals, and on birthdays, and at weddings, and such like times,

For they are worthy; not of themselves, or through any works of righteousness done by them, which are neither meritorious of grace here, nor of glory hereafter; but through the grace of God, and worthiness of Christ. The Jews have a saying somewhat like this k,

"they that walk with God in their lifetime, זוכי×, "are worthy" to walk with him after their death;

In the Apocrypha we read:

"Take thy number, O Sion, and shut up those of thine that are clothed in white, which have fulfilled the law of the Lord.'' (2 Esdras 2:40).

This clause is left out in the Ethiopic version,

Gill: Rev 3:5 - -- He that overcometh,.... The deadness, formality, and imperfection of this church state; gets over these things, and is among the few names in it: t...

He that overcometh,.... The deadness, formality, and imperfection of this church state; gets over these things, and is among the few names in it:

the same shall be clothed in white raiment; the Vulgate Latin, Syriac, Arabic, and Ethiopic versions, read, "thus shall he be clothed in white raiment"; he shall have abundance of spiritual peace and joy, great success and prosperity, both inward and outward, in himself, and in the church; and triumph over all his enemies, sin, Satan, the world, death, and every other enemy; and not only be clothed with change of raiment, the pure and spotless righteousness of Christ, but shall enjoy eternal glory and happiness! the allusion seems to be to the custom of the Jewish sanhedrim in judging of priests fit for service l,

"they examined the priests concerning their genealogies and blemishes; every priest in whom was found anything faulty in his genealogy, he was clothed in black and veiled in black, and went out of the court; but everyone that was found perfect and right, לובש לבני×, "he was clothed in white", and went in and ministered with his brethren the priests.

And I will not blot out his name out of the book of life; by which is meant the choice of persons to everlasting life and salvation; and this being signified by a book, and by writing names in it, shows the exact knowledge God has of his elect, the value he has for them, his remembrance of them, his love to them, and care for them; and that this election is of particular persons by name, and is sure and certain; for those whose names are written in it shall never be blotted out, they will always remain in the number of God's elect, and can never become reprobates, or shall ever perish; because of the unchangeableness of the nature and love of God, the firmness of his purposes, the omnipotence of his arm, the death and intercession of Christ for them, their union to him, and being in him, the impossibility of their seduction by false teachers, and the security of their persons, grace, and glory in Christ, and in whose keeping this book of life is; which respects not this temporal life, that belongs to the book of providence, but a spiritual and eternal life, from whence it has its name,

But I will confess his name before my Father and before his angels; which shows that Christ has an exact and perfect knowledge of all the chosen ones, he knows them by name; and that he has a strong and affectionate love for them, and is not ashamed of them, of their cause, of their persons, and of their relation to him; and that he does and will own, acknowledge, and approve of them, both here and hereafter: and the confession he will make of them will be in their praise; in praise of their persons and the comeliness of them, which he has put upon them; and of their graces, though they are his own; and of their good works as the fruits of grace: and this will be made before his Father, who chose these persons, and gave them to him to preserve and save; and before the angels, who rejoice at their salvation and happiness; and this will be at the last day; see Gill on Mat 10:32.

Gill: Rev 3:6 - -- He that hath an ear, let him hear,.... See Gill on Rev 2:7.

He that hath an ear, let him hear,.... See Gill on Rev 2:7.

Gill: Rev 3:7 - -- And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia write,.... Of the city of Philadelphia; see Gill on Rev 1:11; According to the Apostolical Constitution...

And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia write,.... Of the city of Philadelphia; see Gill on Rev 1:11; According to the Apostolical Constitutions m, one Demetrius was ordained bishop of this church by the Apostle John; but this is not to be depended on; nor is it known who this angel was: however, certain it is there was a church in this place in the "second" century, in the times of Ignatius, who wrote an epistle to it, and which then had a bishop or pastor over it, whom he mentions n, though not his name. And in the same century twelve Philadelphians suffered martyrdom at the same time Polycarp did o; and in the "third" century a church remained in this place; and also in the "fourth", since a bishop of this church was in the council at Nice; and in the "fifth" century, a presbyter of Philadelphia was in the synod at Ephesus under Celestine; and in the "sixth" century, a bishop of this place assisted at the fifth synod at Constantinople; and in the "eighth" century, Stephen, bishop of the church here, was in the Nicene synod p; and there are now very many that bear the name of Christians of the Greek Church in this place q. This church is an emblem of, and represents the church in that period of time, in which will be the spiritual reign of Christ. Its name signifies "brotherly love", which in this interval will be very remarkable; saints shall not envy, vex, and distress one another any more; they shall be one in the hand of the Lord, and among themselves. Love, which is now so cold, and so much wanting in our present Sardian church state, will be exceeding warm and fervent, and in its highest pitch in the Philadelphian state. The characters Christ here assumes point at the holiness of life, truth of doctrine, and purity of discipline, for which this church state will be distinguished: in this period of time an open door for the Gospel will be set; it will be preached in its power and purity, and; will be greatly succeeded; the fulness of the Gentiles will be brought in, and the Jews will be converted; hypocrites and formal professors will be discerned and detected; great honour and respect will be shown the church by all men; and this state will be an emblem and pledge of the new Jerusalem state, of which mention is made in this epistle, or the thousand years' personal reign of Christ with all his saints:

these things saith he that is holy; which character not only agrees with Christ, as God, who is the Holy One of Israel, and equally glorious in holiness as his Father, but as man; his nature was free from original sin; his life from any actual transgression; his doctrines were pure and holy, and so were all his works, and all his administrations in each of his offices: and, as Mediator, he is the cause and author of holiness to his people; they are sanctified in him, and have their sanctification from him, and are sanctified by him: this character he chooses now to take, because he was sending an epistle to such as were lovers of holiness, and famous for it, both internal and external; so that while he describes himself, he points at persons, the members of churches in this interval:

he that is true; truly God, and truly man: true and faithful in the discharge of his several offices, and in the trust reposed in him, both of the grace and persons of the saints, and in what he undertook to do for them: he is truth itself, the truth of types, promises, and prophecies; and the sum and substance of all the truths of the Gospel; and is therefore to be depended on in every prediction and promise; and this title of Christ may have some view to the truth of doctrine which shall, in this period, prevail, and to the faithfulness and integrity of his people to his cause and interest:

he that hath the key of David; mention is made of David, because he was a type of Christ; and because from him Christ came according to the flesh, and whose throne he was to sit upon, in a spiritual sense; and because, in this period of time, the Jews are to be converted, who will seek the Lord their God, and David their king: and by the key of David is meant the key of the house of David; that is, the church of Christ, of which David's house and family were a type: and this key is either the key of knowledge, or it is expressive of power and authority. Christ has the key of knowledge, he knows all the persons of his people, all their affairs, and what they do in his house, and how they behave there: he has the key of knowledge in the Scriptures, and gives it to his ministers. And it may also design his authority in his house and church, in fixing the ordinances of it, in bestowing gifts on men, and in dispensing the blessings of grace and goodness; this may have some regard to the pure discipline of this church, as well as to its light and knowledge in the doctrines of the Gospel. The Targum on Isa 22:22 interprets the key of the house of David, of שולטן, "the dominion" or "government of the house of David",

He that openeth, and no man shutteth, and shutteth, and no man openeth; he opens the Scriptures, which are shut to a natural man, as he did in his own personal ministry, when here on earth, and now by his Spirit; and none can shut them, either men or devils, or hinder the spread of light and knowledge by them: he opens the door of the Gospel, and gives an opportunity to preach it, and liberty of mind and expression to his ministers, and a door of utterance to them, and of entrance for it into the hearts of men, which none can shut, or hinder: he opens the door of the church, which is himself, and lets in his sheep into the sheepfold, into a Gospel church state, and the ordinances of it; and he opens the door of heaven by his blood and righteousness, and gives his people liberty and boldness to enter into the holiest of all, and brings many sons to glory in spite of all the opposition of men and devils: on the other hand, when he pleases, he shuts up the Scriptures, and the eyes of men from seeing what is in them; he shuts up the door of the Gospel, and forbids the preaching of it in this and that place; and the door of heaven will be shut by him at the last day, when all called to the marriage of the Lamb are entered, and there will be no opening. This shows the sovereignty, power, and authority of Christ, and which he will exercise in this church state, see Job 12:14. A like phrase is in the Talmud r, כיון שסוגר שוב ×ינו פותח, "when he shuts again, there is none that opens",

Gill: Rev 3:8 - -- I know thy works,.... Good works, of faith, love, and patience; and which lay much in preaching, professing, and maintaining the pure Gospel, and in a...

I know thy works,.... Good works, of faith, love, and patience; and which lay much in preaching, professing, and maintaining the pure Gospel, and in acts of charity to one another; and which were done to some degree of perfection, and with great sincerity; since this church is not complained of, that her works were not perfect before God, as the former church is:

behold, I have set before thee an open door, and no man can shut it; or "which no man can shut", as read the Alexandrian copy, and others, the Complutensian edition, the Vulgate Latin, and all the Oriental versions. This "open door" may design an uncommon opportunity of preaching the Gospel; and a very great freedom of mind in the preachers of it, and great attention in the hearers, whose hearts will be opened to observe, receive, and embrace it; and a very large gathering in of souls to Christ, and his churches; much and frequent preaching of the word with great success, which it will not be in the power of any creature to stop or hinder: now will the abundance of the sea, the forces of the Gentiles flow in, and the nation of the Jews shall be born at once,

For thou hast a little strength; which is not to be understood of inward spiritual strength, for of this the church in this period will have a great deal, as well as of courage and fortitude of mind, but outward power and authority: some great men, and princes of the earth, will come into the churches of Christ, even kings will come to the brightness of her rising; for now will all those prophesies have their accomplishment, which respect the secular grandeur of the church, with regard to its numbers, power, and riches; see Isa 49:18.

And hast kept my word; both the commands and ordinances of Christ in practice, and that in their primitive purity, as they were delivered by Christ and his apostles, particularly baptism and the Lord's supper; which have been, one or other of them, or both, most sadly corrupted in all the periods of the churches hitherto, excepting the apostolical one, but will now be restored to their pristine purity and glory; and also the doctrines of the Gospel, which will be kept, not in memory only, but in the heart and life; they will be publicly and openly preached, professed, and defended:

and hast not denied my name: Christ himself, his doctrine respecting his person, office, and grace, neither in words, nor in works, but both ways confessed and owned it.

Gill: Rev 3:9 - -- Behold, I will make them of the synagogue of Satan,.... Which may be understood either of the Papists, the followers of the man of sin, whose coming w...

Behold, I will make them of the synagogue of Satan,.... Which may be understood either of the Papists, the followers of the man of sin, whose coming was after the working of Satan, and whose doctrines are the doctrines of devils, many of whom will now be converted, and brought to the true church; or rather of the Jews, who had, and have, and will have till this time, their synagogues for religious worship in their way; but they are no other than synagogues of Satan; the men that assemble in them are of their father the devil, and do his works, and will do them:

which say they are Jews, and are not, but do lie; they are Jews by name and nation; they are. Jews outwardly, but not inwardly and spiritually, Rom 2:28; they are carnal wicked men, under the influence of Satan, though they pretend to be religious men, and worshippers of God:

behold, I will make them to come and worship before thy feet; the conversion of the Jews is here intended. The worship here spoken of is not either a religious or civil worship of the church, for the church is not the object of worship; only before whom, and at whose feet, this worship shall be given to God in the most humble and hearty manner: the sense is, that the convinced and converted Jews shall come to the church, and in the most lowly and contrite manner acknowledge their former blindness, furious zeal, and violent hatred of the Christians, and shall profess their faith in Christ; shall join themselves to the church, and partake of the ordinances of the Gospel with them; and shall worship God and Jesus Christ, their Lord and King, in their presence, and at their feet:

and to know that I have loved thee; the Gentile church, and the members of it, in assuming human nature, and dying for, and redeeming them, as well as the Jews; in sending his Gospel to them, and calling them by his grace, and planting them into Gospel churches; giving them a place, and a name in his house, better than that of sons and daughters.

Gill: Rev 3:10 - -- Because thou hast kept the word of my patience,.... The Gospel; so called because it gives an account of the patience of Christ, in the midst of all h...

Because thou hast kept the word of my patience,.... The Gospel; so called because it gives an account of the patience of Christ, in the midst of all his outward meanness and humiliation; and because it is a means of implanting and increasing the grace of patience, which God is the efficient cause of, and Christ is the example of; that patience, which bears a resemblance to his, in enduring afflictions, reproaches, persecutions, desertions, and temptations, and in waiting for his kingdom and glory; and because both the preachers and professors of the word have need of patience, and should exercise it in like manner as Christ did. This word, the churches, in the Philadelphian state, will keep pure and incorrupt, and observe the ordinances of it according to the directions given in it; and will believe the promise of Christ's personal coming, and patiently wait for it: wherefore, Christ promises as follows,

I also will keep thee from the hour of temptation, which shall come upon all the world, to try them that dwell upon the earth; this hour seems to refer not to any of the vials which will be poured out on the antichristian states, but to some affliction and distress which will befall the reformed churches, and will light upon the outward court worshippers among them It seems to be the last struggle of the beast of Rome, and to denote some violent and sharp persecution, such as what Daniel mentions, that never was before nor since; but it will be but short, but one hour, the twenty fourth part of a prophetical day or year, perhaps about a fortnight; yet it will be very extensive; it will reach all the world, the whole Roman empire, and all that dwell upon the earth, that are called by the name of Christians, and will try them, whether they are so or not; Christ will now have his fan in his hand, and purge his floor of all his formal professors and hypocrites; and it will be known who are his true churches, and pure members; and these he will keep close to himself, and preserve safe amidst all the distress and confusion the world will be in. This cannot refer to the bloody persecutions under the Roman emperors, for from those the church at Philadelphia was not preserved. We read s of twelve members of it that suffered with Polycarp,

Gill: Rev 3:11 - -- Behold, I come quickly,.... To bring on this hour of temptation on the reformed churches, which will be at the beginning of this period; to help and d...

Behold, I come quickly,.... To bring on this hour of temptation on the reformed churches, which will be at the beginning of this period; to help and deliver, save and preserve the truly godly among them; to destroy antichrist, and introduce the latter day glory:

hold that fast which thou hast; either her grace in the exercise of it, as her faith, patience, &c. or rather the doctrines of the Gospel, and the ordinances of it, which she had received, as delivered by Christ and his apostles: and which she had held in the truth and purity of them, and is now exhorted to hold them fast, since this hour of temptation would be a trying time to her faith, patience, integrity, and constancy:

that no man take thy crown; not eternal happiness, called a crown of life, glory, and righteousness, and which was prepared for her, and promised to her, and would be certainly given her; nor was there any danger of another's taking it from her; not but that exhortations of this kind to the saints are necessary, with respect to that, to excite to diligence, care, and watchfulness; and are no ways contrary to their final perseverance, and certain salvation, but are means thereof: but either her honour for her faith and faithfulness, for her integrity, sincerity, and purity, is here meant; or the glorious things which were spoken of this church state, and to be accomplished in it, Psa 87:3; see Isa 60:1.

Gill: Rev 3:12 - -- He that overcometh,.... In the hour of temptation, in this period of time; that stands his ground then, sustains the shock of the beast, with courage ...

He that overcometh,.... In the hour of temptation, in this period of time; that stands his ground then, sustains the shock of the beast, with courage and intrepidity, and overcomes him:

will I make a pillar in the temple of my God; by which is meant not the church triumphant, though such will have a place, and an abiding one there; but the church militant, so called in allusion to the temple at Jerusalem, for its author, matter, situation, strength, solidity, magnificence, and stateliness, and for its holiness; and may be said to be the temple of God, because it is of his building, and is the place where he dwells, and is worshipped; and the temple of Christ's God, as he is man and Mediator, through whom all worship is given to God in it; and those who are overcomers by the grace and strength of Christ are made pillars by him here, in allusion to the two pillars, Jachin and Boaz, in Solomon's temple; that is, they become very ornamental in the church, they are made honourable members of it; they come in at the right door into it, and fill up their places, and all relative duties in it, and walk becoming their profession; and, like pillars, are a support to it, to the interest of the church, the truths of the Gospel, and to weak and poor saints; and, as pillars, they are upright in heart and conversation, and are steady, firm, and constant:

and he shall go no more out; out of the church, the temple of the Lord, but shall abide in it unto death: it is a promise of perseverance both in the grace of God, and in a profession of religion; there shall not be such instances of apostasy as now,

And I will write upon him the name of my God; in allusion to inscriptions of names on pillars; the sense is, that it should be manifest that such are interested in God, as their covenant God and Father, in like manner as he is the God and Father of Christ; and this should be as plain and as evident as an inscription on a pillar, or as if it was written upon their foreheads, as the high priest had on his forehead written, "holiness to the Lord"; and indeed it will be by their holiness that it will so clearly appear that God is their covenant God; for in this church state, or spiritual reign of Christ, holiness unto the Lord shall be upon the bells of the horses:

and the name of the city of my God; which is new Jerusalem, in allusion to "Jehovah Shammah"; meaning the Gospel church in the latter day glory; and the sense is, that such shall be manifestly citizens of this city, in this new and glorious state of the church, and shall enjoy all the privileges of it, which at this time especially will be many and great. This will not be the new Jerusalem church state, or the thousand years' reign of Christ in person, for in that there will be no temple, as in this; but it will have the name, and some appearance of it; it will bear some resemblance to it, and be a pledge of it:

which cometh down out of heaven, from my God; as it is before called new Jerusalem, in distinction from the old, so here it is said to come down from heaven, or to be the heavenly Jerusalem, in distinction from the earthly one. The inhabitants of it will be born from above, and be called with an heavenly calling, and their conversation will be in heaven, and all the glory of this church will come from God,

And I will write upon him my new name; either the name of "Jehovah" our righteousness; or rather the name of King of kings, and Lord of lords, Rev 19:16; which Christ will now acquire, or at least this will now be made more manifest upon the destruction of antichrist, in this church state; in which conquest he will make all his people sharers, and they shall now more openly appear to be kings, and to reign with him in his spiritual kingdom.

Gill: Rev 3:13 - -- He that hath an ear, let him hear,.... See Gill on Rev 2:7.

He that hath an ear, let him hear,.... See Gill on Rev 2:7.

Gill: Rev 3:14 - -- And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write,.... Of the city of Laodicea; see Gill on Rev 1:11; there was a church here in the times of t...

And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write,.... Of the city of Laodicea; see Gill on Rev 1:11; there was a church here in the times of the Apostle Paul; by whom it was founded is not known; mention is made of it in Col 2:1, who was now the angel, or pastor of it, whether Epaphras, who is there named, or another, is not certain. According to the Apostolical Constitutions t, Archippus was ordained bishop of it by the apostles; see Col 4:16. There was a church here in the second century, for Sagaris, bishop of it, suffered martyrdom in the times of Antoninus Verus u; and in the "fourth" century, this church was famous for two eminent bishops, Theodorus and Gregory; and in the "fifth" century, it was the metropolitan church of Phrygia, as it was in the "seventh" century, in which age Tyberius, bishop of this place, was in the sixth synod at Constantinople w; but now it is even without inhabitants x. This church represents the state of the church, from the end of the spiritual reign of Christ, till the time of his personal appearing and kingdom, to judge the quick and dead; for after the spiritual reign is over, professors of religion will sink into a formality, and into a lukewarm frame of spirit, and into great spiritual sloth and security, Rev 3:15, which will make those times like the times of Noah and of Lot; and such will be the days of the coming of the son of man to judge the world. Its name signifies either "the righteousness of the people"; and so may point at that popular and external righteousness, which the majority of the professors of religion in this period of time will be boasting of, and trusting in; being self-sufficient, and self-dependent, when at the same time they will be naked, as well as poor and blind, Rev 3:17; or it signifies "the judging of the people"; for this church state, at the end of it, will bring on the general judgment; the Judge will now be at the door indeed, standing and knocking; and they that are ready to meet the bridegroom, when he comes, will be admitted into the nuptial chamber, and sit down with him in his throne, in the thousand years' kingdom, at the close of which will be the second resurrection, when all the people, small and great, shall be judged, Rev 3:19.

These things saith the Amen; see Isa 65:16; The word "Amen" is the name of a divine Person with the Jews, and it seems the second Person; for so on those words in Pro 8:30; "then was I by him as one brought up with him", they observe y, do not read "Amon", the word there used, but "Amen"; and, a little after, "Amen", they say, is the "notaricon", or sign of ×ל מלך × ×מן, "God the faithful King"; they make z "Amen" to be one of the names of the second "Sephira", or number in the Cabalistic tree, by whom the second Person in the Godhead seems to be designed: and they say a, that the word "Amen", by gematry (or numerically) answers to the two names "Jehovah, Adonai". Christ may be so called, because he is the God of truth, and truth itself; and it may be expressive of his faithfulness, both to God his Father, and to his people, in whom all the promises he either made, or received, are yea and amen; and also of the firmness, constancy, and immutability of Christ, in his nature, person, and offices, in his love, fulness of grace, power, blood, and righteousness; and is very appropriately assumed by him now, when he was about to give the finishing stroke to all covenant engagements, and to all promises and prophesies; see Rev 1:18.

The faithful and true witness; who as he was in the days of his flesh; see Gill on Rev 1:5; so he will be at the day of judgment, a swift witness against all ungodly men; and he may the rather take up this title, not only on that account, but to show that the description he gives of the state and condition of this church is just, Rev 3:15; and to engage it to take his advice the more readily, Rev 3:18; and to assure it of the nearness of his coming, Rev 3:20; and to strengthen the faith of his people, and quicken their hope and expectation of the happiness with him promised, Rev 3:21; the same character is given to the Logos, or Word of the Lord, by the Targumist in Jer 42:5, let the Word of the Lord be to us לסהיך קשוט ומהימן, "for a true and faithful witness"; the very phrase here used,

The beginning of the creation of God; not the first creature that God made, but the first cause of the creation; the first Parent, producer, and efficient cause of every creature; the author of the old creation, who made all things out of nothing in the beginning of time; and of the new creation, the everlasting Father of, everyone that is made a new creature; the Father of the world to come, or of the new age and Gospel dispensation; the Maker of the new heaven and new earth; and so a very fit person to be the Judge of the whole world, to summon all nations before him, and pass the final sentence on them. The phrase is Jewish, and it is a title the Jews give to Metatron, by whom they sometimes mean the Messiah; so those words in Gen 24:2, and Abraham said unto his eldest servant of his house, they paraphrase thus b,

""and Abraham said unto his servant", this is Metatron, (or the Mediator,) the servant of God, "the eldest of his house"; for he is תחלת בריותיו של מקו×, "the beginning of the creation of God", who rules over all that he has; for to him the holy blessed God has given the government of all his hosts.

Christ is the αÏχη, "the Prince", or Governor of all creatures,

Gill: Rev 3:15 - -- I know thy works,.... Which were far from being perfect, and not so good as those of the former church: that thou art neither cold nor hot; she was...

I know thy works,.... Which were far from being perfect, and not so good as those of the former church:

that thou art neither cold nor hot; she was not "cold", or without spiritual life, at least in many of her members, as all men by nature are, and carnal professors be; she was alive, but not lively: nor was she wholly without spiritual affections and love; to God, and Christ, to his people, ways, truths, and ordinances; she had love, but the fervency of it was abated: nor was she without spiritual breathings and desires altogether, as dead men are; or without the light and knowledge of the Gospel, and a profession of it, and yet she was not "hot"; her love to God and Christ, and the saints, was not ardent and flaming; it was not like coals of fire, that give most vehement flame, which many waters cannot quench the had not fervency of spirit in the service of the Lord; nor was she zealous for the truths of the Gospel, and for the ordinances of it, and for the house of God and its discipline; nor did she warmly oppose all sin, and every error and false way,

I would thou wert cold or hot; which must be understood, not absolutely, but comparatively; and not that it was an indifferent thing to Christ whether she was one or the other; but he alludes to what is natural among men, it being generally more agreeable to have anything entirely hot, or entirely cold, than to be neither; and so uses this phrase to show his detestation of lukewarmness, and that it is better to be ignorant, and not a professor of religion, than to be a vain and carnal one; Christ desires not simply that she might be cold, but that she might be sensible of her need of spiritual heat and fervency.

Gill: Rev 3:16 - -- So then because thou art lukewarm, and neither cold nor hot,.... A lukewarm professor is one that serves God and mammon; that halts between two opinio...

So then because thou art lukewarm, and neither cold nor hot,.... A lukewarm professor is one that serves God and mammon; that halts between two opinions, and knows not what religion is best, and cares little for any, yet keeps in a round of duty, though indifferent to it, and contents himself with it; and is un concerned about the life and power of godliness, and takes up with the external form of it; and has no thought about the glory of God, the interest of Christ and truth; and this was too much the case of this church, at least of a great number of its members; wherefore it was very loathsome to Christ, hence he threatens:

I will spew thee out of my mouth; this shows how nauseous lukewarmness is to Christ, insomuch that on account of it he would not own and acknowledge her as his; but even cast her out, unchurch her, and have no more any such imperfect church state upon earth, as he afterwards never will, this is the last; nor is there any church state, or any remains of one in Laodicea; it is indeed quite uninhabited.

Gill: Rev 3:17 - -- Because thou sayest, I am rich,.... In worldly goods, which occasioned her lukewarmness, as riches often do, and her vanity, pride, and arrogance, aft...

Because thou sayest, I am rich,.... In worldly goods, which occasioned her lukewarmness, as riches often do, and her vanity, pride, and arrogance, afterwards expressed. Laodicea was a very rich city, and so will be this church state, through the accession of kings and princes, and great men of the earth unto it, in the former period: riches seldom do any good to the churches of Christ, they did not in Constantine's time; and it seems that even at the close of the spiritual reign of Christ they will be of bad consequence, since they will usher in the Laodicean church state: or her meaning is, that she was rich in spiritual things; not in grace, but in external gifts, which still remained, upon the very great pouring forth of the Spirit in the last church state; and in good works, on which she too much trusted for salvation, placing her righteousness in them: she is one whom the Jews c call עשיר בתורה, "rich in the law":

and increased with goods: with outward peace and prosperity, with much natural and divine light and knowledge, with the purity of Gospel ordinances, even beyond the former church state in her own imagination:

and have need of nothing: contenting herself with these external things: true believers, as considered in Christ, stand in need of nothing indeed, they are complete in him, and have everything in him; but, as considered in themselves, they are daily in need of daily food for their souls, as for their bodies, of fresh light and life, strength and comfort, and of new supplies of grace; wherefore this church shows great ignorance of herself, as well as great pride and arrogance to express herself in this manner:

and knowest not that thou art wretched; as all men are in a state of nature and unregeneracy; which may be the case of many professors, and they be ignorant of it; as to be under a sentence of wrath, obnoxious to the curses of the law, in danger of hell and destruction, lost and undone, and unable to extricate themselves out of such a state: true believers account themselves wretched, as the Apostle Paul did, on account of indwelling sin, and the plague of their own hearts, which the members of this church, the greater part of them, were ignorant of:

and miserable; a miserable man is one that is attended with outward afflictions, but this was not the case of this church; and with spiritual poverty, blindness, and nakedness, and this was her case; some persons neither know their misery, nor their need of mercy:

and poor; not in purse, nor in spirit, nor with respect to outward afflictions, nor as to her church state, but in a spiritual sense; one whom the Jews call a d רש בתורה, "poor in the law"; as such may be said to be who have nothing to eat that is fit to eat; nothing to wear but rags, and have no money to buy either; who are in debt, and not able to pay, nor to help themselves on any account; and this may be the case of professors, and yet not known and considered by them:

and blind; natural men are blind as to a saving knowledge of God in Christ, as to the way of salvation by Christ, as to the plague of their own hearts, as to the work of the Spirit of God upon the soul, and as to the truths of the Gospel, in the power of them; but here it regards blindness with respect to her church state, and its imperfection:

and naked; sin has stripped man of his moral clothing; man's own righteousness will not cover his nakedness; and whoever is destitute of the righteousness of Christ is a naked person,

Gill: Rev 3:18 - -- I counsel thee,.... Christ is a Counsellor, and is every way fit to be one, for he is the all wise God, the Ancient of days, and the Father of his peo...

I counsel thee,.... Christ is a Counsellor, and is every way fit to be one, for he is the all wise God, the Ancient of days, and the Father of his people, and, as Mediator, the Wisdom of God; and he was concerned in the council of peace from everlasting; and when he was here on earth he gave counsel in person, and now he gives it by his Spirit, and by his word and ministers; and the substance of it is, to come to him for grace, life, and salvation; for pardon, peace, and righteousness; for spiritual light and knowledge, and every supply of grace; and his advice is always wholesome, good, and suitable, is hearty, sincere, and faithful, and is freely given, and is wise and prudent; and, being taken, infallibly succeeds; the counsel here given follows:

to buy of me gold tried in the fire; by which is meant either a more pure and glorious state of the church, such as was in the former period, or greater; or a larger measure of light and knowledge in the Gospel, which is better than fine gold; or some particular graces, and a comfortable exercise of them, as fervent love and strong faith, which is much more precious than gold; or rather, all spiritual riches in general, which are in Christ, and are unsearchable, solid, substantial and satisfying; are lasting and durable, precious, excellent, and incorruptible: and the buying of this gold is not to be understood in a proper sense, by giving a valuable consideration for it, for no such is to be given, but in an improper sense; it is a buying without money and without price; Christ and his grace are given freely; Christ of whom it is to be had and of him only, does not sell it, but he gives it to those that come to him for it, and desire to have it, and are willing to part with all, so they may but enjoy it; for that it is to be understood in such a sense, is clear from the character of the persons who are advised to buy, who were poor, or beggars, Rev 3:17; the end of it is,

that thou mayest be rich; for though this church was rich, yet not in spirituals; and though she was rich in her own conceit, yet not really so: persons are not to be accounted truly rich who have only this world's goods; none are rich but those who have an interest in Christ and his grace; and they who are poor in this world, and yet have grace, are really rich: the next thing advised to is,

and white raiment; that is, and buy white raiment, by which some understand the heavenly glory, robes of immortality, a being clothed upon with the house which is from heaven; this may be compared to raiment, for it is a glory, an immortality, an incorruption to be put on; and fitly enough to white raiment, for the purity and spotlessness of it; and being clothed with this, no nakedness, or shame of it will appear; and this is to be had from Christ, and in the same way as gold is to be bought of him; the design of this advice may be to quicken the desires of the church after heavenly things; though it rather seems to respect something suitable to her in this present state: wherefore others think that by it are meant good works, holiness of life and conversation; but these are never called white raiment, but even rags, yea, filthy ones, in the best; and whatever cover they may be from nakedness in the sight of men, they are no cover from it in the sight of God, nor do they preserve from shame and blushing: rather then by it is meant the righteousness of Christ, which may be compared to raiment; it is upon the saints, and is put upon them as such; it covers as a garment does, protects from injuries, keeps warm, beautifies and adorns, as raiment does; and it may be compared to white raiment for its purity and perfection; now this is to be bought of Christ, it is to be had of him, and is to be had of him freely, without money and without price; it is a free gift of grace; and even faith itself, which receives it, is the gift of God: the ends of giving this advice are,

that thou mayest be clothed, and that the shame of thy nakedness do not appear; the soul may be naked when the body is well clothed; and notwithstanding a man's moral righteousness, he may not be clothed; they, and they only are clothed, who have on the righteousness of Christ; nakedness arises from want of, righteousness, which is only covered by the righteousness of Christ; and from hence also springs shame, which Christ's righteousness hides:

and anoint thine eyes with eye salve; by which may be meant the word of God, particularly the Gospel; and anointing with it is making use of it for the gaining of light and knowledge: all without this divine revelation are in darkness, and such who reject the authority of it go astray; the Scriptures are the only directory, and rule of faith and practice; the law is a means of enlightening persons to see their sin and misery, and the danger they are in; and the Gospel is a light, whereby is beheld the glory of Christ, of his person and office, of his grace and righteousness, and of salvation by him; and this is the Gospel of Christ, and is to be had of him freely, even the saving knowledge of it. The Jews have adopted the very Greek word here used into their language, and apply it to the law; says R. Chija e, speaking of the law,

"Nyel tyrwlyq, "it is a salve for the eye", a plaster for a wound, &c. it is a salve for the eyes, as is written Psa 19:8.

or else the illumination of the Spirit is meant, by which the eyes of the understanding being enlightened, men see themselves, the impurity of their hearts and nature, the imperfection of their righteousness, their impotency to all that is spiritually good, and that they are lost and undone in themselves; and by which they see Christ and salvation by him, that it is in him, and in no other, and that it is full and suitable, and for the chief of sinners, and that it is all of free grace, and that they have an interest in it; by this they have light into the doctrines of the Gospel, and have some glimpse of the glories of another world; and this is to be had of Christ, who gives his Spirit freely, and an understanding to know spiritual things: and the end of the advice is,

that thou mayest see; who, notwithstanding the conceit she had of herself, was blind; persons may have much human prudence, much knowledge in things moral, yea, in things evangelical, notionally, and yet be blind as to true spiritual light and experience; they only see spiritually and savingly who have the Spirit of God,

Gill: Rev 3:19 - -- As many as I love I rebuke and chasten,.... The persons the objects of Christ's love here intended are not angels, but the sons of men; and these not ...

As many as I love I rebuke and chasten,.... The persons the objects of Christ's love here intended are not angels, but the sons of men; and these not all of them, yet many of them, even all who are his own by his Father's gift and his own purchase; and who are called his church, and sometimes represented as such who love him and obey his commands: the instances of his love to them are many; as his suretyship engagements for them, his assumption of their nature, dying in their room and stead, paying their debts, procuring their peace and pardon, bringing in a righteousness for them, purchasing their persons, his intercession for them, preparations in heaven, supplies of grace, and frequent visits in a kind and familiar manner; and as for the nature of his love, it is free and sovereign, everlasting and immutable, and it is matchless and inconceivable, it is strong and affectionate, and as his Father loved him; and such are rebuked by Christ, not in a way of wrath, but in a tender manner, in order to bring them under a conviction of their sin and of their duty, and of their folly in trusting in, or loving any creature more than himself, and of all their wrong ways; and they are chastened by him, not in a vindictive, but in a fatherly way, which is instructive and teaching to them, and for their good. This seems to refer to some afflictions which Christ was about to bring upon this church, by some means or another, to awaken her out of her sloth and security, and which would be in love to her, and the end be to rouse her zeal and bring her to repentance. Some think this respects the Gog and Magog army, which will encompass the camp of the saints, and the beloved city; but that will not be till after the thousand years' reign, and besides will be no affliction to them; rather it designs the unchurching them, signified by spewing them out of his mouth, Rev 3:16,

be zealous, therefore, and repent; zeal was what was wanting in this church; which is nothing else than hot, fervent, and ardent love, love in a flame; whereas she was neither cold nor hot, but lukewarm, Christ would have her be "zealous" for God; for his cause and interest, for his Gospel, ordinances, and the discipline of his house, and against everything that is evil; against all false worship, all errors in doctrine, all sin and iniquity; and to be zealous of good works, and in the worship of God, both private and public: and "repent"; in an evangelical way, of her lukewarnmess, remissness, and supineness; of her pride, arrogance, and vain boastings of herself; and of her self-sufficience, self-dependence, and self-confidence.

Gill: Rev 3:20 - -- Behold, I stand at the door and knock,.... The phrase of standing at the door may be expressive of the near approach, or sudden coming of Christ to ju...

Behold, I stand at the door and knock,.... The phrase of standing at the door may be expressive of the near approach, or sudden coming of Christ to judgment, see Jam 5:9; and his knocking may signify the notice that will be given of it, by some of the immediate forerunners and signs of his coming; which yet will be observed but by a few, such a general sleepiness will have seized all professors of religion; and particularly may intend the midnight cry, which will, in its issue, rouse them all:

if any man hear my voice; in the appearances of things and providences in the world:

and open the door; or show a readiness for the coming of Christ, look and wait for it, and be like such that will receive him with a welcome:

I will come unto him, and sup with him, and he with me; to and among these will Christ appear when he comes in person; and these being like wise virgins, ready, having his grace in their hearts, and his righteousness upon them, he will take them at once into the marriage chamber, and shut the door upon the rest; when they shall enjoy a thousand years communion with him in person here on earth; when the Lamb on the throne will feed them with the fruit of the tree of life, and lead them to fountains of living water, and his tabernacle shall be among them.

Gill: Rev 3:21 - -- To him that overcometh,.... The lukewarmness, and self-confidence, and security of this state: will I grant to sit with me in my throne; at the clo...

To him that overcometh,.... The lukewarmness, and self-confidence, and security of this state:

will I grant to sit with me in my throne; at the close of this church state, which will be the last of this kind, consisting of imperfect saints, Christ will descend from heaven with the souls of all the righteous, and raise their bodies and unite them to them; which, with the living saints, will make one general assembly and church of the firstborn, all perfect soul and body; among these he will place his tabernacle, and fix his throne; and they being all made kings as well as priests to him, shall now reign on earth with him, and that for the space of a thousand years: and this is the blessing promised the overcomers in the Laodicean state, that when Christ shall set up his kingdom among men, and reign gloriously before his ancients, they shall sit on the same throne with him, or share with him in his kingdom and glory; see Rev 5:10,

even as I also overcame; sin, Satan, the world, death, and hell:

and am set down with my Father in his throne; in heaven, at his right hand; which is expressive of equality to him, distinction from him, communion with him, and of the honour and glory he is possessed of; but it is not on this throne that the saints will sit, only Christ sits on the same throne with the Father in heaven; it is on Christ's throne on earth, or in his personal reign there, that the saints shall sit down with him; and which honour they shall all have, all that are more than conquerors through him, and are made kings by him. And when this reign is over, then will follow the second resurrection, or the resurrection of the wicked, when will come on the judgment of the people, as Laodicea signifies; and when these, with the devils, will form themselves into the Gog and Magog army, and attack the beloved city, the church of glorified saints on earth, under Christ their King, which will issue in the everlasting destruction of the former; and thus these seven churches bring us to the end of all things.

Gill: Rev 3:22 - -- He that hath an ear, let him hear,.... See Gill on Rev 2:7.

He that hath an ear, let him hear,.... See Gill on Rev 2:7.

expand all
Commentary -- Verse Notes / Footnotes

NET Notes: Rev 3:3 Or “come on.”

NET Notes: Rev 3:4 The word “dressed” is not in the Greek text, but is implied.

NET Notes: Rev 3:5 Grk “will confess.”

NET Notes: Rev 3:7 See the note on the word “door” earlier in this verse.

NET Notes: Rev 3:8 Grk “and having kept.” The participle ἐτήρησας (ethrhsas) has been translated as a finite verb d...

NET Notes: Rev 3:9 Or “and know,” “and recognize.”

NET Notes: Rev 3:10 Or “to persevere.” Here ὑπομονῆς (Jupomonhs) has been translated as a genitive of reference/resp...

NET Notes: Rev 3:11 Your crown refers to a wreath consisting either of foliage or of precious metals formed to resemble foliage and worn as a symbol of honor, victory, or...

NET Notes: Rev 3:12 This description of the city of my God is parenthetical, explaining further the previous phrase and interrupting the list of “new names” g...

NET Notes: Rev 3:14 Or “the beginning of God’s creation”; or “the ruler of God’s creation.” From a linguistic standpoint all three mea...

NET Notes: Rev 3:15 Laodicea was near two other towns, each of which had a unique water source. To the north was Hierapolis which had a natural hot spring, often used for...

NET Notes: Rev 3:16 This is the literal meaning of the Greek verb ἐμέω (emew). It is usually translated with a much weaker term like “spit out&...

NET Notes: Rev 3:17 All the terms in this series are preceded by καί (kai) in the Greek text, but contemporary English generally uses connectives only betw...

NET Notes: Rev 3:18 The city of Laodicea had a famous medical school and exported a powder (called a “Phrygian powder”) that was widely used as an eye salve. ...

NET Notes: Rev 3:19 The Greek pronoun ὅσος (Josos) means “as many as” and can be translated “All those” or “Everyone.&#...

NET Notes: Rev 3:20 The expression in Greek does not mean entrance into the person, as is popularly taken, but entrance into a room or building toward the person. See ExS...

NET Notes: Rev 3:21 Or “have been victorious”; traditionally, “have overcome.”

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:4 Thou hast a few names even in Sardis ( 3 ) which have not defiled their garments; and they shall walk with me in ( 4 ) white: for they are ( d ) worth...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:7 ( 6 ) And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia write; These things saith he that is holy, he that is true, he that hath the ( e ) key of David, ...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:8 ( 7 ) I know thy works: behold, I have set before thee an open door, and no man can shut it: for thou hast a little strength, and hast kept my word, a...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:9 Behold, I will make them ( f ) of the synagogue of Satan, which say they are Jews, and are not, but do lie; behold, I will make them to come ( 8 ) and...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:10 Because thou hast ( g ) kept the word of my patience, I also will keep thee from the hour of temptation, which shall come upon all the world, to try t...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:12 ( 9 ) Him that overcometh will I make a pillar in the temple of my God, and he shall go no more out: ( 10 ) and I will write upon him the name of my G...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:14 ( 11 ) And unto the angel of the church of the Laodiceans write; These things saith the ( h ) Amen, the faithful and true witness, the ( i ) beginning...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:15 ( 12 ) I know thy works, that thou art neither cold nor hot: I would thou wert cold or hot. ( 12 ) The proposition of reproof is in this verse, and i...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:17 Because thou sayest, I am rich, and increased with goods, and have need of nothing; and knowest not that thou art wretched, and miserable, ( 13 ) and ...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:19 As many as I love, I rebuke and chasten: be ( k ) zealous therefore, and repent. ( k ) Zeal is set against those who are neither hot nor cold.

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:20 Behold, I stand at the door, and knock: ( 14 ) if any man hear my voice, and open the door, I will come in to him, and will sup with him, and he with ...

Geneva Bible: Rev 3:21 ( 15 ) To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my throne, even as I also overcame, and am set down with my Father in his throne. ( 15 )...

expand all
Commentary -- Verse Range Notes

TSK Synopsis: Rev 3:1-22 - --1 The angel of the church of Sardis is reproved;3 exhorted to repent, and threatened if he do not repent.8 The angel of the church of Philadelphia,10 ...

Maclaren: Rev 3:4 - --Walking In White "Thou hast a few names even in Sardis which have not defiled their garments; and they shall walk with Me in white: for they are wort...

Maclaren: Rev 3:5 - --V. The Victor's Life-Robe "He that overcometh, the same shall be clothed in white raiment: and I will not blot out his name out of the book of life, ...

Maclaren: Rev 3:10 - --Keeping And Kept "Because thou hast kept the word of My patience, I also will keep thee from the hour of temptation."--Rev. 3:10. There are only two ...

Maclaren: Rev 3:11 - --Thy Crown' "Hold that fast which thou hast, that no man take thy crown."--Rev. 3:11. The Philadelphian Church, to which these stirring words are addr...

Maclaren: Rev 3:12 - --VI. The Victor's Life-Names "Him that overcometh will I make a pillar in the temple of My God. and he shall go no more out: and I will write upon him...

Maclaren: Rev 3:15-19 - --Laodicea "I know thy works, that thou art neither cold nor hot… be zealous therefore, and repent."--Rev. 3:15-19. We learn from Paul's Epistle t...

Maclaren: Rev 3:18 - --Christ's Counsel To A Lukewarm Church "I counsel thee to buy of Me gold tried in the fire, that thou mayest be rich; and white raiment, that thou may...

Maclaren: Rev 3:20 - --Christ At The Door "Behold, I stand at the door, and knock: if any man hear My voice, and open the door, I will come in to him, and will sup with him...

Maclaren: Rev 3:21 - --The Victor's Sovereignty "To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with Me in My throne, even as I also overcame, and am set down with My Father in...

MHCC: Rev 3:1-6 - --The Lord Jesus is He that hath the Holy Spirit with all his powers, graces, and operations. Hypocrisy, and lamentable decay in religion, are sins char...

MHCC: Rev 3:7-13 - --The same Lord Jesus has the key of government and authority in and over the church. He opens a door of opportunity to his churches; he opens a door of...

MHCC: Rev 3:14-22 - --Laodicea was the last and worst of the seven churches of Asia. Here our Lord Jesus styles himself, " The Amen;" one steady and unchangeable in all hi...

Matthew Henry: Rev 3:1-6 - -- Here is, I. The preface, showing, 1. To whom this letter is directed: To the angel of the church of Sardis, an ancient city of Lydia, on the banks...

Matthew Henry: Rev 3:7-13 - -- We have now come to the sixth letter, sent to one of the Asian churches, where observe, I. The inscription, showing, 1. For whom it was more immedia...

Matthew Henry: Rev 3:14-22 - -- We now come to the last and worst of all the seven Asian churches, the reverse of the church of Philadelphia; for, as there was nothing reproved in ...

Barclay: Rev 3:1-6

Barclay: Rev 3:1-6 - --Sir W. M. Ramsay said of Sardis that nowhere was there a greater example of the melancholy contrast between past splendour and present decay. Sardi...

Barclay: Rev 3:1-6 - --In the introduction to this letter the Risen Christ is described in two phrases. (i) He is he who has the seven Spirits of God. We have already come ...

Barclay: Rev 3:1-6 - --The lifelessness of the Church at Sardis had a strange effect. (i) The Church at Sardis was untroubled by any heresy. Heresy is always the product of...

Barclay: Rev 3:1-6 - --If anything is to be rescued from the impending ruin of the Church in Sardis the Christians there must wake from their deadly lethargy and watch. No ...

Barclay: Rev 3:1-6 - --In Rev 3:3we have a series of imperatives. (i) The Risen Christ says: "Remember how you received and heard the gospel." It is the present imperative...

Barclay: Rev 3:1-6 - --In Rev 3:4there shines through the darkness a ray of hope. Even in Sardis there are the faithful few. When Abraham is pleading with God for Sodom, ...

Barclay: Rev 3:1-6 - --To those who have been faithful comes the threefold promise. (i) They will be clothed with white raiment. It is said of the righteous that "they wil...

Barclay: Rev 3:7-13

Barclay: Rev 3:7-13 - --Philadelphia was the youngest of all the seven cities. It was founded by colonists from Pergamum under the reign of Attalus the Second, who ruled in...

Barclay: Rev 3:7-13 - --In the introduction to this letter the Risen Christ is called by three great titles, each of which implies a tremendous claim. (i) He is he who is ho...

Barclay: Rev 3:7-13 - --In Rev 3:8-9there is a problem of punctuation. In the early Greek manuscripts there was no punctuation at all. The problem is that the words "becau...

Barclay: Rev 3:7-13 - --In Rev 3:9the promise of the Risen Christ is that some day the Jews who slander the Christians will kneel before them. This is an echo of an expectat...

Barclay: Rev 3:7-13 - --It is the promise of the Risen Christ that he who keeps will be kept. "You have kept my commandment," he says, "therefore, I will keep you." Loya...

Barclay: Rev 3:7-13 - --In Rev 3:11there is promise and warning combined. The Risen Christ tells them that he is coming quickly. It has been said that in the New Testament t...

Barclay: Rev 3:7-13 - --In Rev 3:12we come to the promises of the Risen Christ to those who are faithful. They are many and most would paint pictures which would be vivid an...

Barclay: Rev 3:14-22

Barclay: Rev 3:14-22 - --Laodicea has the grim distinction of being the only Church of which the Risen Christ has nothing good to say. In the ancient world there were at least...

Barclay: Rev 3:14-22 - --Of all the seven Churches that of Laodicea is most unsparingly condemned. In it there is no redeeming feature. It is interesting to note that the th...

Barclay: Rev 3:14-22 - --The condemnation of Laodicea begins with a picture of almost crude vividness; because the Laodiceans are neither cold nor hot, they have about them ...

Barclay: Rev 3:14-22 - --The tragedy of Laodicea was that it was convinced of its own wealth and blind to its own poverty. Humanly speaking, anyone would say that there was ...

Barclay: Rev 3:14-22 - --Rev 3:19is one whose teaching runs throughout Scripture. "I rebuke and discipline all those whom I love." There is a very lovely thing about the way...

Barclay: Rev 3:14-22 - --In Rev 3:20we have one of the most famous pictures of Jesus in the whole New Testament. "Behold," says the Risen Christ, "I am standing at the door...

Barclay: Rev 3:14-22 - --The promise of the Risen Christ is that the victor will sit with him in his own victorious throne. We will get the picture right if we remember that ...

Constable: Rev 2:1--3:22 - --II THE LETTERS TO THE SEVEN CHURCHES chs. 2--3 Before analyzing each of the seven letters that follows we should...

Constable: Rev 3:1-6 - --E. The letter to the church in Sardis 3:1-6 Jesus Christ sent this letter to commend the few faithful Ch...

Constable: Rev 3:4-6 - --4. Promise 3:4-6 Jesus Christ held out blessings for the faithful few in the congregation to sti...

Constable: Rev 3:7-13 - --F. The letter to the church in Philadelphia 3:7-13 The Lord sent the letter to the church in Philadelphi...

Constable: Rev 3:7 - --1. Destination and description of Christ 3:7 Philadelphia (lit. brotherly love; cf. Rom. 12:10; ...

Constable: Rev 3:8 - --2. Commendation 3:8 The Philadelphia Christians had received an "open door" to opportunity for s...

Constable: Rev 3:9-11 - --3. Promise 3:9-11a, 12 Jesus Christ gave no rebuke to this church, as was true of the church in ...

Constable: Rev 3:11 - --4. Exhortation 3:11b, 13 Since Jesus Christ's return is imminent the believers should remain fai...

Constable: Rev 3:14-22 - --G. The letter to the church in Laodicea 3:14-22 Jesus Christ sent this letter to shake the Laodicean Chr...

Constable: Rev 3:14 - --1. Destination and description of Christ 3:14 The last of the seven cities (modern Eski-hisar, "...

Constable: Rev 3:15-17 - --2. Rebuke 3:15-17 This church received no commendation, a fact that makes this letter unique com...

Constable: Rev 3:18-19 - --3. Exhortation 3:18-19 Since they considered themselves to be rich but were spiritually poor Jes...

Constable: Rev 3:20-22 - --4. Promise 3:20-22 In the context we note that God addressed well-known verse 20 to Christians. ...

College: Rev 3:1-22 - --5. White Garments and the Book of Life (3:4-5) 3:4-5 Yet you have a few people in Sardis who have not soiled their clothes. They will walk with me, d...

expand all
Commentary -- Other

Evidence: Rev 3:11 Second coming of Jesus : See Rev 16:15 .

Evidence: Rev 3:16 " The Christian world is in a deep sleep; nothing but a loud shout can awaken them out of it!" George Whitefield " We are not a generation marked ...

expand all
Introduction / Outline

Robertson: Revelation (Book Introduction) THE REVELATION OF JOHN ABOUT a.d. 95 By Way of Introduction Difficulty in the Problem Perhaps no single book in the New Testament presents so ...

JFB: Revelation (Book Introduction) AUTHENTICITY.--The author calls himself John (Rev 1:1, Rev 1:4, Rev 1:9; Rev 2:8). JUSTIN MARTYR [Dialogue with Trypho, p. 308] (A.D. 139-161) quotes ...

JFB: Revelation (Outline) TITLE: SOURCE AND OBJECT OF THIS REVELATION: BLESSING ON THE READER AND KEEPER OF IT, AS THE TIME IS NEAR: INSCRIPTION TO THE SEVEN CHURCHES: APOSTOL...

TSK: Revelation (Book Introduction) The obscurity of this prophecy, which has been urged against its genuineness, necessarily results from the highly figurative and symbolical language i...

TSK: Revelation 3 (Chapter Introduction) Overview Rev 3:1, The angel of the church of Sardis is reproved; Rev 3:3, exhorted to repent, and threatened if he do not repent; Rev 3:8, The ang...

Poole: Revelation 3 (Chapter Introduction) CHAPTER 3

MHCC: Revelation (Book Introduction) The Book of the Revelation of St. John consists of two principal divisions. 1. Relates to " the things which are," that is, the then present state of...

MHCC: Revelation 3 (Chapter Introduction) (Rev 3:1-6) Epistles to the church at Sardis. (Rev 3:7-13) At Philadelphia. (Rev 3:14-22) And Laodicea.

Matthew Henry: Revelation (Book Introduction) An Exposition, with Practical Observations, of The Revelation of St. John the Divine It ought to be no prejudice to the credit and authority of this b...

Matthew Henry: Revelation 3 (Chapter Introduction) Here we have three more of the epistles of Christ to the churches: I. To Sardis (Rev 3:1-6). II. To Philadelphia (Rev 3:7-13). III. To Laodicea ...

Barclay: Revelation (Book Introduction) INTRODUCTION TO THE REVELATION OF JOHN The Strange Book When a student of the New Testament embarks upon the study of the Revelation he feels him...

Barclay: Revelation 3 (Chapter Introduction) The Letter To Sardis (Rev_3:1-6) Sardis, Past Splendour And Present Decay (Rev_3:1-6 Continued) Sardis, Death In Life (Rev_3:1-6 Continued) Sa...

Constable: Revelation (Book Introduction) Introduction Historical background The opening verses of the book state that "John" wr...

Constable: Revelation (Outline) Outline I. The preparation of the prophet ch. 1 A. The prologue of the book 1:1-8 ...

Constable: Revelation Revelation Bibliography Abbott-Smith, George. A Manual Greek Lexicon of the New Testament. Edinburgh: T. & ...

Haydock: Revelation (Book Introduction) THE APOCALYPSE OF ST. JOHN, THE APOSTLE. INTRODUCTION. Though some in the first ages [centuries] doubted whether this book was canonical, and ...

Gill: Revelation (Book Introduction) INTRODUCTION TO REVELATION That this book was written by the Apostle and Evangelist John, is clear not only from the express mention of his name, a...

Gill: Revelation 3 (Chapter Introduction) INTRODUCTION TO REVELATION 3 This chapter contains the epistles to the churches at Sardis, Philadelphia, and Laodicea, and begins with that to Sard...

College: Revelation (Book Introduction) PREFACE This commentary on the Revelation of John has been prepared for general readers of the Bible who desire to deepen their understanding of God'...

College: Revelation (Outline) OUTLINE I. PROLOGUE - 1:1-20 A. Introduction to the Prophecy - 1:1-3 B. Sender - 1:4a C. Recipients - 1:4b D. Prescript - 1:4c-5a E. ...

Advanced Commentary (Dictionaries, Hymns, Arts, Sermon Illustration, Question and Answers, etc)


TIP #14: Use the Discovery Box to further explore word(s) and verse(s). [ALL]
created in 1.70 seconds
powered by
bible.org - YLSA